Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bear_v full_a great_a 258 4 2.1338 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A47362 Antichrist stormed, or, Mystery Babylon the great whore, and great city, proved to be the present Church of Rome wherein all objections are fully answered : to which is added, the time of the end, or a clear explanation of Scripture prophecies, with the judgment of divers learned men concerning the final ruine of the Romish Church, that it will be in this present age : together with an account of the two witnesses, who they are, with their killing, resurrection & ascention : also an examination and confutation of what Mr. Jurieu hath lately written concerning the effusion of the vials ... : likewise a brief review of D. Tho. Goodwins exposition of the 11th chapter of the Revelations, concerning the witnesses, and of that street in which they should lie slain, proving it to be meant of Great Brittain : and a brief collection of divers strange prophecies, some very antient / by Benj. Keach ... ; to which is annext, a short treatise in two parts : 1. The calculation of Scripture numbers by Scripture only, without the help of humane history, 2. Upon the witnesses, giving light to the whole book. Keach, Benjamin, 1640-1704. 1689 (1689) Wing K44; ESTC R19009 133,186 254

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

or_o a_o great_a secular_a power_n clothe_v in_o scarlet_a vestment_n as_o rome_n papal_n do_v than_o rome_n papal_n 〈◊〉_d church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a state_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o do_v so_o apparent_o sit_v upon_o command_n and_o govern_v the_o beast_n or_o secular_a power_n clothe_v in_o scarlet_a vestment_n as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n etc._n etc._n be_v mystery_n babylon_n to_o reinforce_v this_o argument_n we_o challenge_v any_o papist_n atheist_n or_o any_o else_o to_o show_v where_o there_o be_v any_o other_o people_n or_o party_n to_o who_o these_o character_n agree_v as_o well_o as_o with_o rome_n papal_n and_o then_o we_o will_v let_v this_o argument_n shall_fw-mi x._o the_o beast_n that_o mystery_n babylon_n sit_v upon_o command_n and_o govern_v be_v not_o only_o clothe_v in_o scarlet_a but_o be_v also_o full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n rev._n 17._o paral._n now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o mark_n also_o of_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v evident_a viz._n that_o the_o beast_n clothe_v in_o scarlet_a that_o bear_v up_o that_o whorish_a churhc_n be_v full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n this_o appear_v by_o his_o ascribe_v that_o to_o creature_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n only_o and_o in_o divers_a other_o respect_n 1._o when_o the_o curse_a beast_n be_v call_v our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n 2._o and_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v no_o man_n may_v say_v to_o he_o why_o do_v you_o this_o and_o whosoever_o obey_v not_o his_o precept_n incur_v the_o sin_n of_o idolatry_n do_v he_o not_o in_o this_o show_n himself_o indeed_o to_o be_v god_n what_o great_a blasphemy_n can_v there_o be_v 2._o when_o he_o be_v call_v universal_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o this_o blasphemy_n against_o christ_n who_o alone_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 3._o when_o he_o be_v call_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n he_o light_v of_o the_o world_n the_o root_n of_o david_n the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n 4._o when_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n oral_a tradition_n and_o decree_n of_o council_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n cardinal_z hositis_fw-la in_o his_o advertisement_n to_o king_n sigismond_n have_v these_o expression_n if_o they_o that_o be_v the_o heretic_n say_v it_o be_v write_v that_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o devil_n speak_v in_o his_o member_n verbo_fw-la they_o call_v the_o scripture_n paper_n and_o parchment_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o attribute_v more_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n than_o to_o the_o church_n which_o they_o call_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v turn_v hither_o or_o thither_o as_o a_o man_n please_v and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o daughter_n and_o their_o church_n the_o mother_n be_v not_o this_o horrid_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o give_v the_o scripture_n forth_o and_o who_o sacred_a offspring_n they_o be_v 5._o when_o the_o virgin_n mary_n angel_n and_o saint_n be_v invocate_v with_o prayer_n and_o address_n that_o only_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n as_o if_o those_o creature_n be_v infinite_a and_o can_v hear_v we_o at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n as_o earth_n be_v from_o heaven_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v if_o perpendicular_o over_o we_o much_o less_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n over_o which_o they_o can_v be_v whether_o this_o ascribe_v infiniteness_n and_o omnisciency_n and_o divine_a adoration_n to_o creature_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o creator_n be_v not_o blaspemy_n 6._o whether_o it_o be_v not_o blasphemy_n as_o well_o as_o idolatry_n to_o say_v that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o same_o honour_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o who_o image_n it_o be_v for_o so_o azorius_fw-la affirm_v and_o bellarmin_n say_v that_o image_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v worshippe●_n totum_fw-la as_o they_o be_v exemplar_n but_o also_o proper_o and_o by_o themselves_o so_o as_o the_o worship_n may_v be_v terminate_v i●_n they_o 2._o 7._o to_o conclude_v with_o this_o mark_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o blasphemy_n with_o a_o witness_n to_o affirm_v that_o a_o priest_n can_v make_v a_o whole_a christ_n of_o a_o wafer_n cake_n by_o utter_v a_o few_o word_n and_o be_v not_o this_o to_o exalt_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n above_o god_n himself_o for_o this_o which_o they_o affirm_v i●_n to_o do_v more_o than_o god_n indeed_o can_v do_v see_v m●_n pool_n dialogue_n p._n 109._o there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o god_n to_o say_v he_o can_v do_v they_o because_o they_o be_v either_o sinful_a so_o god_n can_v lie_v or_o absolute_o impossible_a god_n himself_o can_v make_v a_o man_n alive_a and_o dead_a at_o the_o same_o time_n god_n can_v make_v the_o whole_a to_o be_v less_o than_o a_o part_n of_o it_o he_o can_v make_v three_o to_o be_v more_o than_o threescore_o he_o can_v make_v a_o son_n to_o beget_v the_o father_n he_o can_v make_v the_o same_o man_n to_o be_v bear_v at_o two_o several_a time_n as_o popish_a authon_n confess_v and_o therefore_o he_o can_v make_v the_o same_o body_n to_o be_v in_o two_o several_a place_n much_o less_o in_o two_o thousand_o place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v can_v god_n make_v that_o to_o be_v that_o which_o it_o be_v not_o all_o know_v the_o bread_n be_v not_o flesh_n but_o real_o bread_n after_o consecration_n arg._n if_o no_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v bear_v up_o and_o support_v by_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n maintain_v from_o he_o such_o blasphemous_a opinion_n than_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v bear_v up_o by_o such_o a_o blasphemous_a beast_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n as_o mystery_n babylon_n xi_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v not_o only_o say_v to_o sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n but_o also_o that_o she_o be_v adorn_v with_o great_a pomp_n and_o outward_a glory_n rev._n 17._o 4._o and_o the_o woman_n be_v array_v in_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o deck_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n etc._n etc._n parallel_n rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o only_o sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n etc._n etc._n but_o she_o be_v also_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v with_o great_a pomp_n and_o external_a glory_n beyond_o any_o people_n call_v themselves_o a_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n this_o be_v such_o a_o visible_a brand_n and_o mark_v upon_o this_o people_n and_o well_o note_v by_o all_o that_o much_o we_o need_v not_o speak_v to_o it_o for_o all_o the_o world_n know_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n delight_v in_o outward_a gaudery_n be_v a_o people_n who_o worship_n be_v fill_v not_o only_o with_o detestable_a tradision_n and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n but_o also_o to_o please_v the_o carnal_a and_o sensitive_a eye_n she_o se●_n it_o off_o with_o rich_a and_o costly_a picture_n curious't_a draw_v and_o other_o outward_a gallantry_n 2._o loo●_n into_o the_o patrimony_n of_o consecrate_a saint_n there_o you_o shall_v find_v riches_n and_o honour_n th●_n not_o durable_a riches_n and_o righteousness_n 3._o loo●_n upon_o their_o garb_n and_o vestment_n and_o the●_n you_o shall_v find_v her_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n g●●_n stere_v in_o cloth_n of_o gold_n and_o adorn_v li●_n emperor_n and_o splendid_a prince_n nay_o and_o be_v some_o of_o her_o priest_n and_o head_n of_o parti●_n what_o think_v you_o say_v one_o of_o the_o anti●●_n father_n of_o this_o man_n the_o pope_n sit_v on_o hi●_n in_o his_o throne_n glister_v in_o purple_a and_o clo●_n of_o gold_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n god_n show_v out_o himself_o as_o if_o bernard_n be_v a_o god_n her_o priest_n be_v ado●●_n in_o such_o costly_a habiliment_n that_o for_o riches_n th●_n may_v become_v the_o high_a order_n of_o ●_o jewish_a priesthood_n 4._o look_v on_o the_o inst●ments_n and_o mode_n of_o their_o worship_n and_o the_o you_o shall_v find_v rich_a altar_n and_o candlestick_n gold_n the_o vessel_n for_o oil_n and_o po●s_n of_o p●sication_n as_o if_o their_o predecessor_n have_v be_v solomon_n temple_n 5._o look_v into_o 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v find_v great_a o●_n ward_n glory_n and_o bravery_n 6._o inquire_v concern_v her_o revenue_n and_o vast_a income_n a●_n there_o you_o
and_o heart_n of_o multitude_n and_o corrupt_v great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n even_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n see_v rev._n 17._o 2._o and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v make_v drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n etc._n etc._n paral._n that_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o cause_v king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o great_a man_n to_o commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o by_o dance_v after_o her_o pipe_n in_o all_o her_o mysterious_a allurement_n and_o detestable_a error_n but_o have_v also_o intoxicated_a the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o multitude_n and_o miserable_o corrupt_v and_o bewitch_v great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n or_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n by_o her_o erroneous_a and_o wicked_a doctrine_n o_o what_o a_o world_n of_o poor_a people_n have_v she_o a_o long_a time_n deceive_v and_o make_v to_o commit_v spiritual_a fornication_n with_o she_o in_o italy_n germany_n poland_n france_n spain_n portugal_n ireland_n and_o last_o in_o england_n and_o scotland_n too_o beside_o many_o other_o country_n 1._o as_o first_o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v believe_v that_o a_o wicked_a man_n shall_v be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o god_n have_v no_o more_o regard_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n and_o dignity_n of_o his_o son_n than_o to_o substitute_v a_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o all_o wicked_a man_n be_v to_o be_v vicegerent_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a jesus_n in_o the_o high_a transaction_n that_o relate_v to_o heaven_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n sure_o if_o god_n shut_v judas_n out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n for_o his_o wickedness_n though_o a_o apostle_n it_o can_v stand_v consistent_a with_o his_o truth_n and_o holiness_n to_o set_v up_o or_o allow_v of_o a_o wicked_a and_o imperious_a pope_n get_v up_o to_o the_o high_a pinnacle_n of_o pride_n and_o make_v he_o the_o immediate_a deputy_n and_o successor_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o impose_v a_o wolf_n as_o shepherd_n upon_o the_o universal_a church_n 2._o one_o who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o determine_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o endue_v with_o power_n to_o impose_v they_o upon_o great_a penalty_n so_o that_o as_o a_o lord_n he_o have_v dominion_n over_o man_n faith_n conscience_n and_o soul_n too_o which_o the_o apostle_n disclaim_v 3._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o poor_a people_n shall_v believe_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v though_o god_n and_o thousand_o of_o good_a man_n see_v and_o full_o know_v there_o be_v not_o such_o abominable_a error_n in_o principle_n nor_o such_o villainous_a enormity_n curse_a action_n cruel_a and_o immoral_a practice_n in_o the_o world_n nay_o such_o that_o turk_n and_o infidel_n do_v abhor_v yet_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o can_v err_v the_o poor_a delude_a multitude_n believe_v and_o hate_v nay_o kill_v other_o that_o oppose_v it_o and_o venture_v body_n and_o soul_n upon_o it_o 4._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n though_o never_o so_o wicked_a nay_o a_o priest_n though_o he_o be_v a_o treacherous_a villain_n a_o contriver_n of_o murder_n and_o a_o abominable_a adulterer_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v his_o equal_n and_o fellow_n sinner_n from_o all_o their_o sin_n though_o direct_o commit_v against_o god_n if_o he_o come_v to_o confession_n though_o the_o pretend_a penitent_a keep_v his_o old_a evil_a habit_n of_o wickedness_n still_o contrary_a to_o what_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o bless_a word_n say_v where_o it_o be_v record_v that_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o that_o forgive_v sin_n and_o blo●●eth_v out_o our_o iniquity_n and_o that_o a_o man_n must_v be_v bear_v again_o i._n e._n the_o evil_a habit_n must_v be_v change_v and_o all_o wicked_a practice_n must_v be_v forsake_v or_o no_o forgiveness_n nor_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n john_n 3._o 3._o 5._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a piece_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n and_o that_o man_n may_v be_v redeem_v out_o of_o it_o with_o money_n though_o god_n say_v the_o redemption_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v precious_a and_o cease_v for_o ever_o psal._n 49._o i_o e._n after_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n 1_o jo._n 1._o 9_o and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n 6._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a intoxication_n and_o a_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o this_o whore_n fornication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o poor_a soul_n shall_v believe_v that_o a_o filthy_a and_o wicked_a priest_n by_o speak_v a_o few_o word_n can_v not_o only_o make_v bread_n and_o wine_n sacred_a but_o also_o turn_v and_o change_v the_o bread_n into_o the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v whole_a christ_n of_o a_o pitiful_a wafer-cake_n by_o a_o charm_n of_o five_o latin_a word_n viz._n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o this_o transubstantiated_a idol_n they_o fall_v down_o before_o &_o adore_v as_o their_o maker_n anathematise_v and_o curse_v all_o that_o shall_v deny_v this_o idol_n of_o indignation_n to_o be_v adore_v with_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n only_o for_o she_o say_v it_o be_v her_o god_n as_o she_o sing_v in_o her_o roman_a missal_n plagas_fw-la sicut_fw-la thomas_n non_fw-la intueor_fw-la eucharist_n deum_fw-la tamen_fw-la meum_fw-la te_fw-la confiteor_fw-la wound_n as_o thomas_n do_v i_o not_o see_v yet_o do_v i_o confess_v thou_o my_o god_n to_o be_v in_o this_o as_o one_o observe_v they_o outdo_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o heathen_n who_o think_v none_o be_v so_o witless_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o that_o which_o be_v eat_v be_v a_o god_n yet_o this_o god_n of_o they_o these_o cannibal_n devour_v even_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n in_o their_o conceit_n the_o poor_a delude_a multitude_n believieng_v contrary_a to_o their_o own_o natural_a reason_n and_o all_o their_o sense_n that_o they_o eat_v real_a flesh_n when_o they_o eat_v that_o wafer-cake_n the_o substance_n nor_o quality_n be_v change_v the_o form_n colour_n and_o taste_n of_o bread_n remain_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n 7._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n shall_v believe_v that_o evil_a and_o idle_a doctrine_n of_o she_o viz._n that_o no_o person_n how_o good_a and_o pious_a so_o ever_o he_o be_v can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o pale_a of_o their_o pollute_a ungodly_a and_o devilish_a church_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v a_o great_a doubt_n and_o question_n whether_o any_o member_n of_o such_o a_o false_a church_n can_v be_v save_v since_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v that_o no_o idolater_n have_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o again_o that_o if_o any_o man_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n or_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o same_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n rev._n 14._o 9_o 10._o and_o he_o shall_v be_v torment_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n beside_o consider_v the_o scripture_n direct_o hold_v forth_o that_o all_o who_o be_v bear_v again_o or_o true_o regenerate_v shall_v be_v save_v let_v they_o be_v of_o what_o church_n they_o will_v provide_v they_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o not_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n for_o certain_o the_o new_a birth_n comprehend_v a_o change_n of_o all_o such_o erroneous_a principle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o other_o evil_a and_o corrupt_a habit_n and_o wicked_a practice_n 8._o be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o spiritual_a intoxication_n that_o such_o a_o number_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n
babylon_n xiii_o but_o further_a to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n who_o this_o whore_n be_v it_o be_v say_v she_o be_v drink_v with_o blood_n this_o be_v another_o mark_n and_o character_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v give_v to_o know_v she_o by_o and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o i_o wonder_v with_o great_a admiration_n rev._n 17._o 6._o now_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a here_o or_o have_v this_o black_a mark_n and_o character_n upon_o she_o she_o be_v the_o unhappy_a church_n and_o people_n in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o give_v cause_n enough_o to_o angel_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a man_n to_o wonder_n i._n e._n to_o see_v a_o woman_n pretend_v to_o be_v noble_o descend_v the_o daughter_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o only_a chaste_a spouse_n of_o the_o lamb_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o peace_n holiness_n and_o innocency_n not_o only_o defile_v with_o all_o those_o foul_a and_o abominable_a error_n idolatry_n and_o detestable_a pollution_n but_o also_o guilty_a of_o so_o much_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o not_o only_o guilty_a of_o blood_n but_o also_o drink_v with_o blood_n yea_o drink_v with_o such_o blood_n but_o that_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a which_o indeed_o give_v cause_n to_o every_o good_a man_n in_o the_o world_n to_o abhor_v she_o and_o that_o we_o may_v make_v this_o most_o evident_o to_o appear_v 1._o consider_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v drink_v 2._o what_o thing_n do_v necessary_o contribute_v to_o it_o 3._o show_v what_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a sign_n of_o it_o be_v 4._o whether_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v fix_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1._o to_o be_v drink_v be_v to_o take_v in_o excessive_o any_o thing_n as_o disorder_n nature_n in_o its_o course_n and_o operation_n this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v a_o general_a definition_n of_o it_o including_z the_o proper_a and_o metaphorical_a notion_n thereof_o 2._o such_o thing_n as_o necessary_o contribute_v to_o it_o be_v 1._o great_a and_o vehement_a desire_n or_o thirst_n after_o it_o 2._o plenty_n of_o the_o thing_n thirst_v after_o 3._o the_o greedy_a take_v their_o fill_n of_o it_o 3._o the_o sign_n of_o drunkenness_n be_v 1._o when_o the_o faculty_n be_v so_o disorder_v that_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o best_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v give_v they_o 2._o when_o they_o will_v abuse_v those_o who_o they_o be_v most_o oblige_v to_o love_n and_o respect_n 3._o when_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o all_o consideration_n of_o their_o own_o and_o other_o good_a and_o for_o bear_v no_o mischief_n but_o what_o they_o be_v restrain_v from_o by_o force_n 4._o that_o these_o thing_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v appear_v 1._o because_o she_o have_v shed_v a_o mass_n a_o very_a great_a mass_n of_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n who_o be_v able_a to_o account_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o she_o have_v murder_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n particular_o in_o bohemia_n germany_n poland_n lithuania_n france_n spain_n italy_n portugal_n low_a country_n england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o pierce_v a_o heart_n of_o stone_n to_o hear_v of_o the_o barbarous_a cruelty_n and_o devilish_a inhumanities_n exercise_v for_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o year_n upon_o the_o poor_a waldenses_n and_o albingenses_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o this_o bloody_a whore_n or_o romish_a harlot_n beside_o the_o wonderful_a number_n and_o multitude_n of_o they_o for_o according_a to_o the_o account_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o history_n hundred_o of_o thousand_o nay_o some_o million_o of_o those_o godly_a christian_n be_v most_o unhumane_o butcher_v by_o the_o bloody_a papist_n child_n bear_v of_o her_o own_o body_n nay_o in_o every_o street_n of_o this_o great_a city_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v run_v down_o like_o a_o river_n be_v this_o not_o notorious_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o can_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o vast_a number_n slay_v in_o bohemia_n in_o france_n and_o in_o ireland_n of_o late_a year_n where_o there_o be_v not_o few_o than_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o soul_n sacrifice_v to_o allay_v the_o thirst_n of_o this_o bloody_a whore._n so_o that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o dispute_n she_o have_v the_o first_o sign_n of_o a_o most_o filthy_a shameless_a drunken_a strumpet_n i._n e._n she_o have_v be_v excessive_a in_o drink_v of_o innocent_a blood_n and_o 2._o not_o only_o so_o but_o she_o have_v drink_v so_o much_o that_o she_o be_v intoxicate_v and_o disorder_v that_o she_o will_v never_o submit_v to_o the_o best_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v give_v she_o for_o she_o have_v be_v so_o mad_a that_o none_o can_v dissuade_v she_o from_o exercise_v her_o cruelty_n on_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n who_o blood_n she_o thirst_v after_o in_o as_o unhuman_a a_o manner_n as_o incarnate_a devil_n can_v devise_v as_o if_o to_o murder_v they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a nor_o can_v it_o satisfy_v she_o but_o she_o will_v have_v they_o die_v many_o death_n as_o hang_v by_o the_o foot_n by_o the_o hand_n by_o the_o middle_n on_o a_o beam_n by_o the_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n on_o tenter_n pour_v melt_v lead_v on_o their_o head_n boil_a in_o caldron_n roast_v alive_a and_o burn_v alive_a the_o poor_a waldenses_n live_v in_o and_o about_o the_o valley_n of_o piedmont_n about_o the_o year_n 1560_o be_v most_o cruel_o and_o barbarous_o murder_v to_o allay_v her_o excessive_a thirst_n some_o be_v strip_v stark_o naked_a and_o whip_v to_o death_n with_o rod_n of_o iron_n other_o draw_v through_o the_o street_n and_o burn_v with_o fire_n brand_n some_o throw_v down_o a_o high_a tower_n and_o some_o cut_n in_o piece_n with_o sharp_a knife_n fourscore_o person_n have_v their_o throat_n cut_v as_o butcher_n kill_v their_o sheep_n threescore_o woman_n be_v so_o cruel_o rack_v that_o the_o cord_n pierce_v their_o arm_n and_o leg_n to_o the_o bone_n and_o then_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n they_o all_o die_v except_o nine_o of_o they_o young_a virgin_n be_v ravish_v in_o a_o barbarous_a manner_n until_o they_o die_v child_n be_v pull_v alive_a out_o of_o their_o mother_n belly_n and_o the_o breast_n of_o many_o woman_n cut_v off_o so_o that_o the_o infant_n die_v of_o famine_n and_o many_o other_o strange_a kind_n of_o torture_n for_o many_o year_n together_o multitude_n of_o those_o godly_a waldenses_n endure_v and_o the_o albingenses_n who_o profess_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o principle_n be_v all_o along_o in_o the_o like_a or_o worse_a sort_n and_o manner_n if_o possible_a butcher_v in_o the_o city_n of_o bezier_n there_o be_v say_v my_o author_n threescore_o thousand_o person_n slay_v the_o priest_n and_o friar_n go_v about_o the_o street_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o cross_n and_o banner_n and_o sing_v te_fw-la deum_fw-la laudamus_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 1655_o in_o the_o valley_n of_o lucerna_fw-la and_o other_o place_n this_o bloody_a strumpet_n thirst_v still_o after_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o like_o a_o filthy_a drunken_a wretch_n cause_v a_o edict_n to_o be_v put_v forth_o that_o such_o who_o will_v not_o turn_v papist_n within_o three_o day_n must_v take_v what_o will_v follow_v and_o indeed_o that_o be_v bad_a enough_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o sir_n samuel_n morelands_n history_n of_o that_o late_a persecution_n it_o begin_v jan._n 25._o 1655._o upon_o which_o some_o thousand_o of_o those_o poor_a soul_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v for_o their_o life_n in_o the_o depth_n of_o snow_n when_o all_o the_o valley_n be_v cover_v with_o water_n there_o be_v among_o they_o some_o woman_n with_o child_n other_o new_o deliver_v some_o sick_a and_o disease_a child_n cry_v and_o lament_v old_a man_n and_o woman_n some_o decrepit_a lean_v on_o their_o staff_n all_o drag_v or_o force_v over_o the_o ice_n &_o snow_n etc._n etc._n with_o bitter_a tear_n sigh_n cry_n and_o wring_v of_o hand_n beat_v of_o breast_n mourn_v and_o complain_v of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o those_o merciless_a papist_n but_o alas_o so_o drink_v with_o blood_n before_o that_o they_o like_v brute_n regard_v none_o of_o their_o cry_n no_o more_o than_o the_o bleat_a of_o sheep_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o no_o soon_o that_o they_o be_v force_v from_o their_o ha●itations_n but_o their_o house_n be_v pillage_v rifle_v and_o ransack_v of_o all_o that_o be_v leave_v and_o this_o not_o sufficient_a neither_o to_o
truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n all_o which_o full_o show_v that_o this_o second_o mark_n of_o drunkenness_n drink_v with_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n meet_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n three_o she_o have_v the_o other_o mark_n of_o drunkenness_n upon_o she_o also_o i._n e._n she_o matter_n not_o who_o she_o abuse_v and_o exercise_n her_o cruelty_n upon_o she_o have_v sometime_o cut_v off_o her_o own_o dear_a child_n viz._n roman_n catholic_n among_o such_o she_o call_v heretic_n as_o it_o happen_v at_o bezier_n and_o other_o place_n cry_v out_o kill_v all_o both_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n say_v the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o nay_o she_o have_v make_v the_o wife_n to_o kill_v her_o husband_n the_o husband_n to_o murder_v the_o wife_n child_n to_o destroy_v their_o own_o dear_a parent_n and_o parent_n their_o child_n ●f_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o show_v she_o be_v drink_v drink_v with_o blood_n what_o can_v from_o whence_o ●_o shall_v draw_v this_o argument_n and_o conclude_v arg._n if_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o people_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n who_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o so_o much_o blood_n blood_n of_o saint_n ●nd_v good_a man_n even_o so_o as_o to_o be_v drink_v with_o blood_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v then_o ●he_v church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o people_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n ●hat_n be_v so_o guilty_a etc._n etc._n as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome●_n ●_z mystery_n babylon_n fourteen_o mystery_n babylon_n have_v one_o mark_v more_o whereby_o she_o may_v be_v know_v i._n e._n she_o ●_o say_v to_o sit_v upon_o a_o beast_n that_o have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n the_o seven_o head_n ●●em_v to_o signify_v as_o the_o angel_n open_v it_o seven_o sort_n of_o sovereign_a government_n as_o well_o as_o hill_n read_v the_o text_n and_o here_o be_v the_o mind_n that_o hat●_n wisdom_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o mountain_n on_o which_o the_o woman_n sit_v and_o there_o ar●_n seven_o king_n five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o one_o ●_o not_o yet_o come_v but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o ma●_n continue_v a_o short_a space_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o w●_n and_o be_v not_o even_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o of_o the_o seve●_n and_o go_v into_o perdition_n rev._n 17._o 9_o 10_o 11_o beside_o all_o that_o we_o have_v say_v it_o we_o find_v n●_n papal_n rome_n here_o viz._n have_v this_o character_n upon_o she_o we_o will_v acquit_v she_o for_o ever_o for_o t●_n city_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o seven_o hill_n be_v rome_n nay_o you_o will_v find_v that_o all_o author_n do_v general_a assert_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a city_n in_o the_o wor●_n that_o be_v found_v on_o seven_o hill_n and_o fame_n for_o it_o by_o its_o old_a poet_n as_o it_o be_v note_v by_o ●_o late_o annotator_n as_o ovid_n virgil_n hora●_n propertius_n the_o name_n of_o these_o hill_n a●_n know_v viz._n palatinus_n quirinalis_n ave●●nus_n celius_n veminalis_fw-la esquilinus_n capit●nus_n but_o the_o seven_o head_n do_v not_o only_o as_o ●_o say_v before_o signify_v seven_o hill_n or_o mountai●●_n but_o also_o seven_o king_n that_o be_v seven_o sort_n government_n which_o rule_v or_o be_v to_o rule_v that_o city_n where_o the_o beast_n reign_v that_o carry_v this_o curse_a harlot_n the_o term_n king_n scripture_n signify_v ruler_n whether_o the_o government_n be_v in_o a_o single_a person_n or_o more_o ●_o deut._n 33._o 5._o now_o that_o rome_n have_v have_v seu●_n sort_n of_o distinct_a sovereign_a government_n in_o she_o be_v so_o notorious_o know_v that_o the_o romanist_n can_v deny_v it_o ●_o king_n romulus_n be_v the_o first_o king_n ii_o consul_n iii_o tribune_n iu._n decemvir_n v._n dictator_n vi_o emperor_n that_o be_v pagan_n vii_o emperor_n that_o be_v christian_n five_o of_o these_o be_v fall_v or_o go_v off_o the_o stage_n before_o st._n john_n receive_v his_o revelation_n the_o government_n of_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n be_v in_o be_v at_o that_o very_a time_n the_o seven_o be_v to_o appear_v and_o to_o continue_v but_o a_o short_a spaco_n viz._n the_o christian_a emperor_n government_n for_o it_o can_v be_v the_o papal_a power_n for_o that_o be_v not_o up_o in_o st._n john_n time_n so_o not_o the_o six_o head._n and_o as_o the_o papal_a power_n for_o that_o reason_n can_v not_o be_v the_o six_o head_n so_o for_o a_o very_a good_a reason_n it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o seven_o government_n because_o whensoever_o that_o appear_v it_o be_v to_o continue_v but_o a_o short_a space_n which_o can_v intend_v the_o papal_a power_n but_o answer_v to_o the_o christian_a empire_n for_o that_o government_n do_v continue_v but_o a_o little_a while_n comparative_o but_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o papal_a power_n have_v continue_v long_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o sovereignty_n that_o wont_a before_o and_o if_o the_o papal_a power_n be_v not_o the_o six_o head_n nor_o the_o seven_o than_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o eight_o which_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o and_o ●oes_v into_o perdition_n ●…fe_v it_o can_v be_v any_o power_n at_o all_o of_o the_o four_o 〈◊〉_d roman_n monarchy_n but_o a_o power_n it_o be_v yea_o and_o a_o great_a power_n too_o of_o the_o four_o or_o roman_a monarchy_n and_o that_o which_o carry_v the_o whore_n according_a to_o the_o express_a letter_n of_o the_o text_n and_o so_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o best_a of_o exposition_n so_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a by_o the_o woman_n city_n or_o whore_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o seven_o mountain_n and_o where_o there_o have_v be_v seven_o several_a sort_n or_o form_n of_o government_n be_v mean_v rome_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v for_o the_o great_a son_n of_o rome_n themselves_o as_o baronius_n bellarmine_n and_o many_o other_o do_v confess_v the_o same_o but_o will_v defend_v their_o mother_n from_o be_v mystery_n babylon_n by_o put_v it_o off_o to_o rome-pagan_a which_o we_o have_v clear_o detect_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o therefore_o do_v affirm_v that_o rome_n papal_n be_v neither_o the_o six_o no●_n seven_o sort_n of_o government_n but_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o of_o the_o seven_o the_o christian_a emperon_n in_o a_o overheat_v zeal_n and_o bounty_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n give_v he_o the_o advantage_n by_o get_v that_o power_n which_o through_o policy_n and_o pride_n he_o attain_v to_o in_o the_o end_n &_o so_o he_o come_v to_o be_v the_o last_o beast_n or_o eight_o government_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o secular_a and_o a_o ecclesiastical_a power_n join_v together_o which_o make_v up_o ●_o beast_n a_o blasphemous_a beast_n who_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb_n which_o be_v this_o twofold_a power_n but_o a_o mouth_n like_o a_o dragon_n and_o a_o whore_n a_o most_o devilish_a drunken_a and_o bloody_a whore._n etc._n etc._n arg._n if_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v bear_v up_o by_o a_o secular_a power_n which_o have_v have_v seven_o sovereign_a government_n in_o a_o city_n seat_v upon_o seven_o hill_n or_o mountain_n than_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a whore._n but_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v bear_v up_o by_o a_o secular_a power_n which_o have_v have_v seven_o sovereign_a government_n in_o a_o city_n seat_v upon_o seven_o hill_n or_o mountain_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n etc._n etc._n be_v mystery_n babylon_n xv._n there_o be_v yet_o one_o mark_n or_o character_n more_o of_o mystery_n babylon_n i._n e._n she_o be_v say_v to_o be_v that_o city_n that_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o woman_n that_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o city_n that_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n rev._n 17_o 18._o now_o that_o rome_n be_v such_o a_o city_n that_o since_o st._n john_n time_n have_v for_o several_a hundred_o of_o year_n reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v so_o evident_a none_o can_v deny_v nay_o and_o that_o rome_n papal_n have_v govern_v a_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n herself_o ow_v ever_o since_o constantine_n who_o give_v it_o as_o she_o say_v as_o a_o patrimony_n to_o st._n peter_n and_o that_o she_o have_v govern_v or_o have_v have_v her_o kingdom_n over_o germany_n poland_n france_n spain_n portugal_n england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n etc._n etc._n be_v clear_a so_o that_o their_o king_n have_v be_v govern_v by_o she_o who_o she_o will_v they_o kill_v and_o who_o she_o will_v they_o save_v alive_a who_o she_o will_v they_o worship_v and_o so_o become_v guilty_a of_o drink_v the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n who_o she_o
god_n a_o kind_a ●●_o middle_n being_n between_o their_o high_a god_n and_o man_n who_o office_n be_v to_o be_v advocate_n or_o mediator_n between_o man_n and_o the_o high_a god_n because_o they_o judge_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o come_v to_o the_o high_a god_n immediate_o and_o these_o they_o worship_v by_o image_n even_o so_o the_o papist_n or_o mystery_n babylon_n have_v divos_fw-la and_o divas_fw-la saint_n of_o all_o sort_n who_o she_o have_v canonize_v to_o be_v call_v upon_o in_o her_o public_a prayer_n altar_n and_o feast_n day_n dedicate_v and_o keep_v unto_o their_o memory_n and_o many_o other_o honour_n acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o unto_o these_o daemon_n or_o petty_a god_n she_o make_v her_o prayer_n and_o have_v their_o image_n and_o to_o who_o they_o do_v divine_a homage_n like_o as_o do_v the_o pagan_n of_o old_a chap._n vi_o show_v the_o judgement_n of_o divers_a eminent_a man_n concern_v the_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o final_a downfall_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n and_o that_o in_o all_o probability_n it_o will_v be_v in_o this_o present_a age_n together_o with_o a_o account_n of_o divers_a strange_a prophecy_n relate_v thereto_o some_o very_a ancient_n &_o c._n have_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o great_a whore_n mystery_n babylon_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o before_o we_o conclude_v this_o 〈◊〉_d treatise_n to_o give_v you_o some_o account_n concern_v her_o full_a and_o final_a overthrow_n which_o have_v be_v for_o ●_o long_o time_n the_o expectation_n of_o god_n people_n and_o multitude_n of_o prayer_n have_v and_o still_o do_v go_v up_o to_o heaven_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n thereof_o and_o reason_n there_o be_v for_o it_o consider_v what_o a_o plague_n she_o have_v be_v to_o the_o world_n and_o church_n of_o god_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n and_o certain_o god_n will_v at_o la●●_n hear_v that_o mighty_a cry_n of_o prayer_n and_o of_o innocent_a blood_n that_o continual_o be_v in_o his_o ear_n and_o since_o the_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o the_o witness_n if_o right_o understand_v give_v such_o clear_a light_n as_o touch_v the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n we_o shall_v give_v you_o some_o brief_a hint_n concern_v this_o important_a and_o weighty_a point_n the_o beast_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o two_o month_n and_o the_o witness_n be_v to_o prophesy_v in_o sackcloth_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1260_o day_n which_o most_o writer_n conclude_v to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o term_n of_o time_n and_o that_o by_o day_n be_v mean_v yea●●_n all_o general_o conclude_v and_o the_o long_a continuance_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o papal_a power_n clear_o show_v that_o to_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o those_o mystical_a number_n yet_o a_o late_a worthy_a and_o learned_a writer_n have_v say_v a_o great-deal_a to_o prove_v the_o forty_o two_o month_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v by_o the_o moon_n and_o not_o by_o the_o sun_n and_o if_o so_o then_o as_o he_o show_v the_o time_n of_o the_o witness_n wear_v sackcloth_n be_v thirty_o eight_o year_n long_o than_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n but_o yet_o be_v to_o terminate_v together_o he_o conclude_v the_o witness_n put_v on_o their_o sackcloth_n so_o many_o year_n before_o the_o beginning_n or_o epoch_n of_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n see_v his_o book_n entitle_v the_o command_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n to_o come_v out_o if_o babylon_n moreover_o he_o say_v the_o time_n epoch_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n must_v be_v fix_v at_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o seven_o sort_n of_o government_n or_o christian_a emperor_n reign_v which_o say_v he_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 475._o and_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o beast_n reign_v and_o tyranny_n be_v but_o forty_o two_o month_n which_o by_o the_o moon_n he_o account_v to_o be_v just_a 1222_o year_n the_o period_n of_o which_o will_v be_v say_v he_o in_o 1697._o and_o this_o we_o will_v say_v he_o have_v doubtless_o fix_v the_o epoch_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n more_o fair_o than_o many_o writer_n before_o he_o have_v do_v because_o all_o along_o where_o the_o reign_n of_o one_o head_n or_o government_n end_v the_o other_o begin_v as_o it_o be_v say_v you_o know_v the_o king_n never_o die_v take_v his_o own_o word_n p._n 25._o thus_o far_o the_o matter_n be_v determine_v according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n i._n e._n whenever_o the_o seven_o king_n assert_v to_o be_v the_o christian_a emperor_n government_n expire_v viz._n by_o a_o civil_a death_n or_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o imperial_a name_n and_o power_n immediate_o the_o eight_o king_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n must_v succeed_v and_o bear_v up_o the_o roman_a city_n in_o gratideur_n and_o whoever_o have_v bear_v up_o that_o city_n in_o supremacy_n since_o that_o time_n must_v be_v according_a to_o prophesy_v that_o eight_o king_n i._n e._n the_o beast_n now_o i_o appeal_v to_o all_o the_o world_n what_o year_n that_o be_v when_o the_o western_a imperial_a name_n fall_v and_o it_o be_v know_v in_o all_o history_n to_o be_v the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 475._o for_o in_o the_o wonderful_a dispose_n of_o god_n no_o one_o have_v claim_v a_o title_n of_o empire_n from_o that_o city_n since_o that_o year_n but_o the_o pope_n i_o do_v commend_v the_o ingenious_a reader_n to_o the_o book_n itself_o now_o if_o this_o be_v true_a or_o can_v be_v grant_v we_o be_v very_o near_o the_o final_a ruin_n of_o the_o papistry_n nay_o and_o from_o divers_a other_o author_n most_o or_o all_o that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o agree_v it_o will_v be_v in_o this_o very_a age_n peter_z du_fw-fr moulin_n a_o wise_a and_o renown_a french_a author_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n say_v from_o the_o year_n 1689._o popery_n shall_v fall_v and_o go_v down_o but_o all_o conclude_v that_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o this_o great_a city_n fall_v first_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v bring_v we_o forth_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o prophecy_n for_o that_o great_a britain_n be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o great_a city_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v and_o that_o also_o the_o witness_n be_v rise_v or_o arise_v and_o will_v soon_o be_v upon_o their_o foot_n be_v the_o thought_n of_o several_a worthy_a man_n but_o i_o be_v limit_v to_o the_o number_n of_o sheet_n can_v enlarge_v as_o i_o will_v do_v therefore_o we_o shall_v 1._o brief_o give_v you_o our_o understanding_n who_o the_o t●_n witness_n be_v in_o which_o we_o agree_v and_o accord_n with_o s●u●i●_n learned_a man_n 2._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o slay_v of_o the_o witness_n 3._o also_o some_o probable_a conjecture_n concern_v the_o ti●●_n when_o slay_v as_o also_o of_o their_o resurrection_n stand_v 〈◊〉_d their_o foot_n and_o ascension_n 1._o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o the_o judicious_a reader_n what_o different_a sentiment_n there_o have_v be_v about_o who_o or_o what_o the_o two_o witness_n be_v some_o think_v they_o be_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n other_o magistracy_n and_o ministry_n other_o two_o sort_n of_o godly_a church_n some_o have_v think_v they_o to_o be_v moses_n and_o elias_n who_o tho_o along_o time_n since_o be_v glorify_v in_o heaven_n yet_o shall_v come_v again_o and_o be_v kill_v on_o earth_n which_o be_v the_o most_o improbable_a of_o any_o of_o the_o other●_n yet_o the_o papist_n writer_n and_o some_o other_o of_o late_a time●_n have_v assert_v this_o but_o we_o judge_v by_o they_o be_v mean_v god_n faithful_a people_n call_v two_o witness_n because_o of_o the_o smallness_n of_o their_o number_n who_o have_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n all_o the_o time_n of_o antichri●●_n reign_n or_o else_o call_v two_o as_o comprehend_v both_o minister_n who_o be_v more_o direct_o intend_v and_o people_n also_o they_o may_v be_v call_v two_o as_o so●●_n think_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o twofold_a testimony_n to_o 〈◊〉_d true_a gospel_n ministry_n and_o magistracy_n and_o this_o th●●_n conclude_v because_o call_v also_o two_o candlestick_n &_o 〈…〉_z allude_v to_o those_o two_o son_n of_o oil_n i._n e._n 〈…〉_z and_o zerubbabel_n it_o be_v evident_a god_n call_v his_o people_n especial_o his_o faithful_a minister_n his_o witness_n you_o be_v 〈◊〉_d witness_n say_v the_o lord_n isa._n 44._o 8._o and_o say_v christ_n ●●_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o act._n ●_o 8._o and_o act._n 5._o 32._o we_o be_v his_o witness_n etc._n etc._n also_o call_v two_o because_o two_o 〈◊〉_d the_o number_n which_o god_n
the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v by_o their_o liberality_n make_v the_o pope_n great_a at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v the_o most_o flourish_a state_n of_o europe_n it_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o popish_a empire_n between_o spain_n germany_n england_n exact_o as_o a_o street_n or_o place_n of_o concourse_n be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o a_o city_n it_o be_v also_o foursquare_a as_o such_o a_o place_n or_o street_n of_o a_o great_a city_n i._n e._n almost_o as_o long_o as_o broad_a and_o i_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o it_o be_v particular_o in_o france_n that_o the_o witness_n must_v remain_v dead_a i._n e._n that_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n must_v be_v utter_o abolish_v this_o be_v already_o do_v by_o the_o revocation_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o nantes_n and_o by_o the_o enormous_a cruelty_n of_o the_o soldier_n pag._n 254._o say_v he_o we_o be_v in_o my_o opinion_n certain_o in_o this_o persecution_n which_o must_v extinguish_v the_o true_a religion_n for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a if_o we_o will_v reckon_v those_o 3_o year_n &_o a_o half_a from_o the_o abrogate_a of_o the_o edict_n of_o nantes_n in_o the_o month_n of_o october_n 1685._o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n will_v fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 1689._o and_o this_o be_v absolute_o the_o conjecture_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr du_fw-fr moulin_n in_o his_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n he_o hope_v that_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o antichristian_a party_n shall_v cease_v in_o the_o year_n 1689_o but_o in_o p._n 255._o he_o seem_v to_o intimate_v he_o be_v not_o confident_a it_o will_v happen_v then_o one_o main_a reason_n i_o cite_v this_o french_a writer_n thus_o far_o be_v to_o give_v you_o all_o his_o reason_n why_o he_o judges_z france_z to_o be_v the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n where_o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v be_v slay_v etc._n etc._n and_o to_o gratify_v my_o reader_n i_o shall_v also_o here_o add_v something_o out_o of_o clavis_fw-la apocalyptica_fw-la write_v many_o year_n ago_o by_o a_o famous_a german_a doctor_n who_o endeavour_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o germany_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n in_o which_o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v lie_v as_o dead_a but_o by_o the_o way_n it_o be_v observable_a what_o he_o say_v p._n 46._o concern_v the_o 7_o trumpet_n in_o the_o second_o period_n say_v he_o from_o the_o three_o hundred_o ninety_o five_o until_o the_o one_o thousand_o six_o hundred_o fifty_o five_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n where_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v open_v and_o seven_o angel_n with_o seven_o trumpet_n declare_v to_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o seven_o judgement_n its_o ruin_n c._n 8._o which_o plague_n have_v be_v fulfil_v see_v he_o call_v the_o trumpet_n plague_n the_o first_o by_o the_o invasion_n of_o barbarous_a nation_n anno_fw-la 395._o v._n 7._o the_o second_o by_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o first_o happen_v by_o alaricus_n anno_fw-la 410._o v._n 8._o the_o three_o by_o take_v away_o imperial_a dignity_n in_o augustulus_n anno_fw-la 476._o v._n 10._o the_o four_o by_o the_o abolition_n of_o all_o eminent_a public_a charge_n at_o rome_n anno_fw-la 552._o v._n 12._o the_o five_o by_o saracen_n as_o the_o first_o woe_n c._n 9_o the_o six_o by_o the_o turk_n chap._n 9_o v._n 13._o as_o the_o second_o wo._n in_o the_o three_o period_n when_o the_o 1655._o year_n do_v begin_v the_o seven_o angel_n do_v sound_a and_o withal_o the_o seven_o judgement_n be_v execute_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o three_o woe_n whereby_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v rev._n 10._o 7._o now_o though_o this_o great_a author_n be_v mistake_v as_o all_o have_v be_v hitherto_o who_o have_v prefix_v upon_o a_o exact_a time_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v right_a as_o to_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n which_o he_o say_v bring_v in_o the_o last_o plague_n and_o the_o three_o and_o last_o woe_n but_o to_o proceed_v p._n 69._o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v be_v overcome_v and_o kill_v say_v he_o that_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v remove_v and_o thrust_v out_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a and_o political_a office_n and_o employment_n it_o appear_v he_o understand_v the_o death_n of_o the_o witness_n to_o be_v take_v as_o we_o have_v hint_v before_o i._n e._n only_o a_o civil_a death_n and_o so_o too_o do_v all_o expositor_n affirm_v that_o i_o can_v meet_v with_o but_o now_o observe_v what_o street_n it_o be_v in_o his_o judgement_n they_o must_v lie_v as_o dead_a in_o and_o that_o be_v he_o say_v germany_n p._n 74._o the_o ten_o horn_n yet_o remain_v germany_n or_o the_o german_a empire_n can_v be_v account_v say_v he_o but_o one_o of_o the_o horn_n which_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v and_o a_o kingdom_n say_v he_o by_o itself_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n this_o be_v the_o principal_a street_n in_o the_o great_a city_n the_o principal_a horn_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o principal_a kingdom_n in_o the_o four_o monarchy_n who_o head_n be_v represent_v by_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n this_o german_a empire_n be_v call_v the_o street_n per_fw-la excellentiam_fw-la because_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a street_n in_o the_o empire_n because_o 1._o it_o be_v call_v the_o roman_a empire_n 2._o by_o reason_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o image_n of_o the_o old_a roman_a empire_n have_v seven_o head_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o seven_o prince_n elector_n and_o ten_o province_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o ten_o circle_n into_o which_o it_o be_v distribute_v 3._o it_o have_v the_o pre-eminency_n above_o all_o other_o king_n adhere_v to_o the_o papal_a state_n now_o say_v he_o in_o this_o street_n we_o must_v seek_v the_o war_n etc._n etc._n he_o seem_v to_o say_v more_o for_o germany_n be_v the_o street_n in_o my_o judgement_n than_o jurieu_n for_o france_n to_o be_v it_o but_o they_o that_o read_v our_o great_a writer_n dr._n goodwin_n will_v soon_o i_o be_o persuade_v see_v more_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o great_a britain_n be_v that_o very_a street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n in_o which_o the_o witness_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o lie_v dead_a than_o any_o other_o for_o as_o my_o worthy_a friend_n before_o cite_v intimate_v god_n value_v not_o nor_o account_v of_o people_n and_o nation_n from_o their_o greatness_n or_o external_a grandeur_n but_o from_o their_o light_n glory_n &_o excellency_n of_o their_o spirit_n &_o purity_n now_o what_o nation_n or_o kingdom_n be_v so_o famous_a or_o have_v be_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n or_o have_v obtain_v so_o great_a light_n as_o this_o of_o great_a britain_n it_o must_v be_v in_o one_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n doubtless_o where_o the_o witness_n have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n in_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o lie_v as_o dead_a and_o i_o question_v whether_o in_o any_o one_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n the_o faithful_a witness_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n as_o here_o in_o this_o nation_n for_o by_o finish_v their_o testimony_n may_v be_v mean_v as_o some_o observe_v bear_v witness_n to_o christ_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o every_o one_o of_o his_o office_n but_o also_o in_o all_o his_o ordinance_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o primitive_a purity_n of_o they_o which_o many_o think_v there_o have_v not_o be_v the_o like_a testimony_n upon_o this_o respect_n bear_v any_o where_o else_o as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o true_a church_n constitution_n and_o discipline_n and_o to_o true_a magistracy_n and_o ministry_n and_o to_o christ_n absolute_a authority_n as_o king_n of_o saint_n and_o king_n of_o nation_n and_o bear_v in_o such_o a_o public_a manner_n as_o it_o have_v be_v here_o former_o and_o of_o late_a take_v the_o doctor_n word_n p._n 165._o and_o if_o in_o this_o last_o combat_n the_o witness_n be_v single_v out_o as_o one_o party_n and_o by_o witness_n be_v mean_v only_o such_o faithful_a christian_n and_o professor_n as_o do_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o godliness_n and_o sincerity_n hold_v forth_o a_o eminent_a testimony_n and_o witness_n above_o that_o which_o other_o of_o the_o crowd_n of_o the_o common_a professor_n do_v and_o so_o not_o man_n of_o learning_n but_o of_o holiness_n and_o zeal_n be_v they_o who_o be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v the_o real_a tormentor_n of_o these_o enemy_n then_o sure_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n where_o such_o witness_n be_v chief_o find_v who_o do_v continue_v eminent_o to_o hold_v forth_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o powerful_a testimony_n as_o holy_a man_n for_o this_o be_v a_o testimony_n of_o holiness_n not_o of_o learning_n sure_o
a_o time_n between_o both_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v be_v at_o as_o great_a uncertainty_n as_o if_o no_o time_n have_v be_v set_v almost_o therefore_o if_o we_o take_v the_o finish_v their_o testimony_n to_o respect_v their_o work_n than_o it_o be_v our_o concernment_n to_o consider_v wherein_o this_o finish_v part_n do_v lie_v and_o that_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v in_o a_o witness_n to_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ._n his_o prophetical_a and_o priestly_a office_n be_v first_o witness_v to_o and_o this_o have_v be_v last_o contest_v for_o even_o to_o blood_n in_o the_o last_o war_n in_o england_n as_o the_o other_o have_v be_v upon_o which_o this_o last_o war_n have_v be_v commence_v the_o testimony_n be_v further_o confirm_v in_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o many_o of_o those_o concern_v in_o the_o finish_n of_o this_o testimony_n the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o late_a year_n have_v be_v carry_v on_o against_o she_o otherwise_o than_o in_o former_a age_n in_o other_o method_n and_o under_o other_o name_n and_o pretence_n all_o bespeak_v that_o the_o time_n of_o finish_v the_o testimony_n be_v come_v and_o the_o war_n commence_v and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o overcome_a if_o not_o kill_v also_o six_o where_o this_o shall_v be_v ans._n it_o will_v be_v there_o where_o this_o finish_v part_n of_o the_o witness_n to_o christ_n be_v bear_v for_o there_o the_o last_o war_n be_v which_o be_v the_o last_o effort_n which_o antichrist_n shall_v make_v against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o overcome_v and_o kill_v will_v be_v and_o where_o they_o shall_v lie_v dead_a and_o where_o they_o shall_v rise_v when_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n from_o god_n come_v upon_o they_o now_o where_o shall_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n tell_v we_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n rev._n 11._o 8._o not_o in_o all_o the_o ten_o but_o in_o one_o street_n and_o upon_o their_o resurrection_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n fall_v not_o the_o whole_a city_n at_o once_o five_o 13._o so_o that_o in_o the_o street_n or_o kingdom_n where_o the_o testimony_n have_v be_v finish_v there_o all_o the_o rest_n follow_v and_o there_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v begin_v to_o a_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o all_o her_o persecutor_n and_o mortal_a enemy_n seven_o when_o this_o shall_v be_v ans._n to_o know_v the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o these_o time_n and_o thing_n there_o be_v two_o way_n of_o calculate_v the_o one_o be_v beginning_n at_o the_o head_n of_o a_o number_n so_o reckon_v forward_o to_o its_o end_n the_o other_o be_v backward_o as_o daniel_n do_v chap._n 9_o beginning_n our_o reckon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o number_n and_o so_o reckon_v to_o the_o beginning_n now_o by_o one_o of_o these_o two_o way_n in_o god_n time_n we_o shall_v infallible_o know_v but_o to_o the_o question_n i_o suppose_v both_o way_n may_v be_v a_o help_n to_o we_o now_o and_o scripture_n number_n have_v a_o dependence_n one_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o there_o lie_v the_o harmony_n of_o they_o when_o that_o be_v understand_v the_o great_a number_n which_o include_v all_o the_o rest_n throughout_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n under_o the_o three_o last_o of_o daniel_n four_o monarchy_n be_v that_o of_o 2300_o year_n which_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o carry_v on_o by_o scripture_n to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o within_o forty_o five_o or_o forty_o four_o year_n from_o this_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1686._o there_o be_v two_o other_o great_a number_n in_o daniel_n chap._n 12._o one_o of_o 1290._o the_o other_o 1335._o which_o be_v forty_o five_o more_o than_o the_o other_o so_o that_o although_o they_o both_o begin_v together_o they_o do_v not_o both_o end_n together_o by_o 45_o year_n that_o they_o begin_v together_o be_v evident_a for_o the_o 45th_o be_v the_o addition_n of_o so_o many_o to_o the_o 1290._o therefore_o bless_v be_v he_o that_o live_v to_o the_o forty_o five_o long_o than_o the_o 1290._o for_o although_o the_o church_n deliverance_n shall_v begin_v at_o the_o 1290._o it_o shall_v not_o be_v complete_v till_o forty_o five_o more_o therefore_o bless_v be_v he_o that_o live_v till_o that_o time_n so_o that_o when_o ever_o these_o 1335._o year_n begin_v they_o end_v with_o the_o 2300_o year_n also_o again_o the_o 1290._o be_v thirty_o more_o than_o 1260._o in_o rev._n 11._o therefore_o though_o they_o may_v end_v together_o yet_o they_o can_v begin_v together_o and_o because_o of_o this_o expositor_n have_v general_o judge_v that_o the_o 1290._o in_o daniel_n relate_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o 1260_o to_o the_o gentile_a church_n but_o by_o what_o reason_n i_o can_v be_v satisfy_v hence_o they_o head_n this_o 1290._o at_o julian_n attempt_v to_o rebuild_v the_o temple_n the_o reason_n of_o which_o be_v this_o he_o have_v apostatise_v from_o christianity_n and_o restore_v the_o gentile_a worship_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o as_o a_o affront_n to_o christian_n put_v the_o jew_n upon_o sacrifice_v also_o who_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o but_o in_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n therefore_o he_o order_v they_o to_o build_v it_o which_o they_o attempt_v to_o do_v but_o can_v but_o attempt_v for_o god_n by_o his_o immediate_a power_n prevent_v they_o this_o julian_n begin_v his_o reign_n in_o 365._o and_o reign_v but_o three_o year_n so_o that_o this_o opinion_n time_n have_v confute_v for_o add_v 1290_o to_o 368_o it_o make_v but_o 1658._o at_o which_o time_n they_o reckon_v the_o jew_n will_v be_v call_v but_o no_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v therefore_o they_o expound_v all_o these_o place_n which_o we_o read_v sacrifice_n with_o a_o supplement_n in_o dan._n 8_o 12._o chap._n 11._o 31._o chap._n 12._o 11._o to_o intend_v the_o jewish_a worship_n which_o julian_n attempt_v to_o set_v up_o in_o confront_v to_o christianity_n to_o be_v the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a for_o all_o or_o any_o of_o which_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n it_o be_v proper_o translate_v sacrifice_n in_o one_o place_n as_o chap._n 9_o 26_o 27._o and_o this_o do_v relate_v to_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n then_o in_o be_v of_o god_n own_o appointment_n which_o according_o be_v take_v away_o as_o christ_n himself_o also_o admonish_v mat._n 24._o 15._o by_o titus_n etc._n etc._n 368_o 1290_o 1658_o but_o the_o abomination_n which_o make_v desolate_a i_o conceive_v be_v some_o corruption_n in_o the_o gospel_n worship_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o see_v we_o as_o before_o find_v the_o apostle_n concern_v so_o much_o in_o forewarn_v the_o church_n by_o a_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n of_o what_o have_v also_o be_v express_o foretell_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n if_o it_o be_v express_o foretell_v it_o must_v be_v write_v some_o where_o or_o other_o and_o take_v the_o apostle_n own_o exposition_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3._o why_o may_v we_o not_o rather_o reckon_v this_o to_o be_v the_o abomination_n to_o astonishment_n foretell_v by_o daniel_n and_o this_o come_v in_o in_o the_o 383._o year_n when_o syricius_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o continue_v 15_o year_n in_o his_o time_n marriage_n be_v forbid_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o in_o the_o 425._o year_n caelestinus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o continue_v eight_o year_n he_o assume_v the_o temporal_a power_n as_o 2_o tim._n 3._o 1_o 2_o 4_o 5._o and_o why_o we_o may_v not_o head_n these_o number_n here_o i_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o understand_v in_o the_o last_o of_o which_o i_o conceive_v antichrist_n do_v make_v his_o first_o visible_a appearance_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o add_v the_o 1260_o to_o 425_o it_o make_v 1685_o and_o you_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o end_n of_o 2300_o day_n within_o forty_o five_o year_n or_o a_o year_n or_o two_o which_o time_n i_o conceive_v be_v allot_v to_o pour_v out_o the_o vial_n and_o to_o accomplish_v the_o great_a revolution_n in_o that_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o earth_n in_o order_n to_o the_o possess_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a dan._n 7._o 26_o 27_o 28._o there_o be_v time_n express_v by_o time_n time_n and_o divide_v of_o time_n three_o time_n in_o scripture_n as_o dan._n 7._o 25._o 12._o 7._o rev._n 12._o 14._o i_o find_v time_n thus_o express_v but_o in_o one_o place_n more_o and_o that_o be_v dan._n 4._o 23._o where_o its_o certain_o take_v for_o year_n and_o by_o what_o rule_n we_o will_v construe_v it_o otherwise_o in_o other_o place_n i_o see_v not_o and_o that_o in_o dan._n 12._o 11._o seem_v plain_o to_o relate_v to_o a_o special_a time_n of_o the_o enemy_n accomplish_v
opinion_n be_v that_o worthy_a and_o learned_a divine_a mr._n john_n can_n and_o some_o other_o time_n will_v open_v these_o thing_n more_o clear_o but_o i_o be_o persuade_v whensoever_o those_o vial_n and_o last_o plague_n come_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o god_n judgement_n will_v be_v so_o manifest_a that_o they_o will_v be_v discern_v and_o know_v of_o all_o and_o be_v quite_o different_a from_o all_o other_o judgement_n that_o have_v fall_v upon_o the_o antichristian_a state_n and_o people_n from_o their_o first_o rise_n but_o since_o we_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n come_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o wonder_n let_v none_o be_v discourage_v for_o though_o there_o be_v very_o near_o a_o most_o dismal_a hour_n yet_o it_o will_v doubtless_o fall_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o such_o who_o be_v of_o baby_n lons_fw-fr race_n and_o spirit_n the_o godly_a shall_v see_v the_o lord_n have_v not_o forget_v they_o nor_o the_o righteous_a blood_n that_o have_v be_v shed_v but_o will_v appear_v sudden_o to_o plead_v sion_n controversy_n and_o set_v up_o his_o own_o kingdom_n therefore_o let_v we_o be_v much_o in_o prayer_n and_o cry_v mighty_o to_o god_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o his_o more_o glorious_a appearance_n for_o we_o be_v very_o confident_a a_o very_a dreadful_a hour_n be_v near_o and_o it_o will_v come_v upon_o carnal_a secure_a and_o all_o formal_a protestant_n nay_o fear_n shall_v surprise_v the_o sinner_n in_o zion_n though_o it_o will_v be_v a_o glorious_a hour_n to_o all_o that_o be_v find_v faithful_a to_o jesus_n christ_n i_o desire_v all_o inquire_a person_n to_o weigh_v well_o what_o we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o if_o it_o afford_v any_o further_a light_n to_o any_o of_o they_o let_v they_o bless_v god_n i_o be_o in_o hope_n it_o will_v put_v many_o upon_o a_o further_a search_n into_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n however_o i_o shall_v at_o present_a say_v no_o more_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n till_o i_o see_v a_o little_o further_a what_o god_n be_v about_o to_o do_v and_o at_o present_a take_v my_o leave_n of_o thou_o and_o remain_v thy_o servant_n in_o the_o gospel_n benj._n keach_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o various_a opinion_n concern_v mystery_n babylon_n 1._o not_o the_o world_n of_o wicked_a man_n 2._o not_o old_a chaldea_n babylon_n 3._o not_o jerusalem_n 4._o not_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n 5._o not_o rome_n heathen_a 6._o not_o rome_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n after_o some_o papist_n say_v rome_n shall_v apostatise_v to_o paganism_n again_o 7._o by_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v mean_v the_o present_a papal_n or_o romish_a church_n prove_v from_o p._n 4._o to_o p._n 38._o ch._n 2._o prove_v all_o the_o mark_n that_o the_o scripture_n give_v of_o mystery_n babylon_n meet_v direct_o in_o papal_a rome_n from_o p._n 39_o to_o p._n 102._o ch._n 3._o literal_a babylon_n a_o type_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n show_v in_o 12_o particular_n from_o p._n 103._o to_o p._n 116._o ch._n 4._o show_v the_o little_a horn_n dan._n 7._o to_o mean_a the_o pope_n in_o 10_o particular_n from_o p._n 117._o to_o p._n 127._o ch._n 5._o prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n in_o mat._n 13._o 15._o and_o st._n paul_n in_o act_n 20._o 29._o and_o 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o thes._n 2._o 3._o point_a out_o the_o papal_a church_n from_o p._n 128._o to_o p._n 135._o ch._n 6._o show_v the_o judgement_n of_o divers_a eminent_a writer_n concern_v who_o the_o two_o witness_n be_v and_o who_o not_o p._n 136._o that_o they_o have_v be_v late_o slay_v and_o be_v rise_v or_o about_o to_o rise_v p._n 140_o 141._o what_o the_o ascension_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n be_v and_o that_o it_o be_v near_a p._n 145._o ch._n 7._o where_o be_v show_v the_o judgement_n of_o many_o english_a writer_n about_o the_o seven_o vial_n with_o a_o answer_n to_o mr._n peter_n jurieu_o who_o have_v late_o assert_v in_o his_o treatise_n that_o they_o be_v all_o pour_v out_o prove_v by_o many_o argument_n that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o as_o yet_o pour_v out_o nor_o will_v till_o the_o seven_o angel_n blow_v he_o trumpet_z from_o p._n 153._o that_o england_n be_v the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n where_o the_o witness_n be_v to_o be_v slay_v or_o lie_v dead_a p._n 182_o 183_o etc._n etc._n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n begin_v at_o the_o earthquake_n or_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o sound_v of_o the_o seven_o trumpee_n and_o that_o it_o be_v at_o the_o door_n p._n 186_o 187_o 188._o divers_a strange_a prophecy_n p._n 188_o 189._o postscript_n wherein_o you_o have_v the_o substance_n of_o what_o a_o late_a nameless_a great_a french_a writer_n have_v say_v in_o answer_n to_o mr._n jurieu_o about_o the_o non-effusion_n of_o the_o vial_n p._n 193._o antichrist_n storm_v or_o mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a whore_n and_o great_a city_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o papal_a hierarchy_n chap._n i._n wherein_o the_o various_a opinion_n concern_v mystery_n babylon_n be_v discover_v and_o all_o their_o objection_n answer_v who_o deny_v by_o she_o be_v mean_v the_o papal_a power_n or_o present_a state_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o who_o be_v man_n of_o any_o read_n that_o most_o of_o our_o eminent_a protestant_a writer_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a do_v affirm_v without_o the_o least_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o great_a whore_n speak_v of_o rev._n 17._o call_v mystery_n babylon_n yet_o we_o find_v that_o most_o worthy_a man_n who_o have_v of_o latter_a time_n so_o well_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o opposition_n to_o popery_n have_v not_o so_o much_o bend_v their_o study_n this_o way_n i_o mean_v direct_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v our_o present_a task_n as_o it_o have_v be_v to_o detect_v divers_a or_o most_o of_o her_o erroneous_a principle_n and_o detestable_a practice_n which_o be_v rather_o to_o lop_n off_o some_o of_o the_o branch_n of_o this_o evil_a and_o curse_a tree_n than_o to_o dig_v it_o up_o by_o the_o root_n for_o if_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v that_o she_o be_v that_o great_a whore_n viz._n mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a mother_n of_o harlot_n down_o she_o go_v at_o once_o and_o if_o we_o have_v not_o do_v it_o so_o effectual_o as_o it_o may_v be_v desire_v yet_o we_o be_v in_o hope_n wherein_o we_o have_v be_v defective_a it_o may_v stir_v up_o some_o able_a pen_n to_o perfect_v what_o we_o have_v anew_o undertake_v but_o to_o proceed_v for_o the_o more_o orderly_a management_n of_o our_o present_a work_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o if_o we_o give_v you_o the_o various_a opinion_n that_o have_v more_o or_o less_o present_v themselves_o to_o the_o world_n about_o who_o or_o what_o people_n this_o great_a whore_n mystery_n babylon_n be_v which_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o seven_o follow_a head_n 1._o and_o first_o of_o all_o as_o reverent_a mr._n pool_n observe_v some_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n of_o wicked_a man_n 2._o other_o will_v have_v this_o woman_n ●or_a this_o babylon_n to_o be_v old_a chaldean_a babylon_n 3._o that_o it_o be_v jerusalem_n and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n 1._o because_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n or_o last_o beast_n that_o be_v to_o head_n this_o babylon_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o st._n paul_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v god._n 2._o because_o this_o city_n where_o the_o beast_n reign_v and_o shall_v slay_v the_o witness_n be_v spiritual_o call_v sodom_n and_o egypt_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_a rev._n 11._o 8._o 4._o that_o it_o be_v the_o turkish_a empire_n or_o power_n of_o the_o saracen_n which_o mr._n mede_n somewhat_o touch_v and_o in_o a_o brief_a way_n most_o learned_o argue_v against_o in_o his_o three_o book_n pag._n 644_o 645._o 5._o that_o it_o be_v indeed_o rome_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o four_o or_o last_o empire_n but_o rome_n in_o its_o heathen_a state_n under_o the_o idolatrous_a and_o persecute_v emperor_n so_o the_o rhemist_n will_v have_v it_o if_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o fix_v upon_o rome_n to_o be_v this_o apocalyptical_a or_o mystery_n babylon_n for_o this_o opinion_n the_o present_a romanist_n have_v no_o better_a advocate_n than_o dr._n hammond_n who_o have_v do_v very_o worthy_o at_o other_o turn_n but_o here_o have_v doubtless_o great_o mistake_v his_o way_n see_v his_o annotation_n upon_o the_o 17_o chapter_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n 6._o that_o it_o be_v the_o present_a power_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o under_o
pretence_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n do_v influence_n and_o govern_v the_o secular_a power_n and_o state_n of_o kingdom_n of_o this_o last_o opinion_n be_v the_o ancient_a waldenses_n who_o feel_v the_o bloody_a power_n of_o of_o rome_n vent_v itself_o in_o most_o horrid_a and_o barbarous_a cruelty_n against_o they_o and_o that_o for_o a_o long_a series_n of_o time_n as_o appear_v by_o our_o most_o authentic_a ancient_a and_o modern_a writer_n who_o give_v a_o very_a ample_a account_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n of_o christian_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n last_o pass_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n where_o they_o have_v have_v power_n to_o which_o opinion_n of_o the_o waldenses_n most_o of_o our_o modern_a protestant_a divine_n agree_v of_o which_o we_o shall_v mention_v only_a cartwright_n fulk_n the_o worthy_o admire_v and_o learned_a mede_n not_o forget_v famous_a du_n moulin_n of_o france_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o work_n at_o large_a 7._o some_o of_o the_o papist_n who_o grant_n that_o by_o babylon_n rome_n be_v mean_v but_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v rome_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o they_o say_v rome_n shall_v apostatise_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o paganism_n again_o and_o now_o because_o we_o will_v not_o take_v thing_n upon_o trust_n nor_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o many_o book_n and_o quotation_n it_o appear_v needful_a that_o we_o remove_v the_o objection_n with_o as_o much_o brevity_n as_o we_o can_v and_o first_o that_o mystery_n babylon_n can_v be_v fair_o apply_v unto_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o wicked_a man_n nor_o to_o old_a chaldean_a babylon_n nor_o to_o jerusalem_n the_o turk_n nor_o saracen_n nor_o terminate_v in_o the_o heathenish_a state_n of_o rome_n no●_n rome_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o they_o say_v rome_n shall_v apostatise_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o paganism_n again_o and_o that_o none_o else_o can_v be_v mean_v or_o intend_v by_o she_o but_o the_o papal_a power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1._o mystery_n babylon_n can_v be_v the_o whole_a world_n of_o wickedman_n for_o in_o opposition_n to_o this_o 1._o the_o apostle_n john_n speak_v here_o of_o a_o certain_a great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n v_o 18._o this_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o wicked_a world_n 2._o the_o world_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v those_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o this_o woman_n make_v drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n now_o she_o that_o make_v they_o drink_v and_o those_o that_o be_v make_v drink_v can_v be_v the_o same_o 3._o this_o woman_n v_o 9_o sit_v on_o seven_o mountain_n and_o so_o do_v not_o all_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o world._n 4._o we_o be_v command_v to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o babylon_n but_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world._n 2._o if_o she_o be_v the_o old_a chaldean_a babylon_n then_o 1._o where_o be_v the_o mystery_n mention_v rev._n 17._o 5._o 2._o mystery_n babylon_n here_o mention_v be_v by_o all_o acknowledge_a to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n so_o be_v never_o old_a chaldean_a 3._o beside_o it_o be_v general_o agree_v to_o by_o all_o not_o without_o good_a ground_n that_o literal_a babylon_n be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o type_n of_o she_o which_o be_v all_o we_o will_v speak_v to_o it_o 3._o it_o can_v be_v mean_v the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n 1._o because_o jerusalem_n do_v not_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o st._n john_n time_n when_o he_o see_v this_o vision_n and_o write_v the_o revelation_n which_o this_o city_n babylon_n be_v express_o say_v to_o do_v rev._n 17._o 18._o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n jerusalem_n have_v be_v not_o only_o under_o captivity_n divers_a time_n before_o but_o be_v then_o entire_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_a yoke_n as_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v confirm_v and_o themselves_o do_v most_o plain_o confess_v we_o have_v no_o king_n but_o caesar._n 2._o jerusalem_n be_v never_o in_o so_o high_a esteem_n with_o the_o beast_n as_o to_o be_v capable_a to_o ride_v as_o queen_n regent_n upon_o he_o as_o this_o woman_n whore_n or_o city_n be_v say_v to_o do_v rev._n 17._o 7._o and_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o i_o wherefore_o do_v thou_o marvel_v i_o will_v tell_v thou_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o carry_v she_o which_o have_v the_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n rev._n 17._o 7._o compare_v with_o verse_n 3._o so_o he_o carry_v i_o away_o in_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n for_o by_o the_o woman_n sit_v and_o the_o beast_n carry_v be_v undoubted_o signify_v influence_n power_n and_o dominion_n which_o jerusalem_n be_v far_o remote_a from_o not_o only_o under_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n but_o also_o under_o the_o three_o kingdom_n that_o go_v before_o it_o viz._n the_o babylonian_a grecian_a and_o persian_a as_o may_v be_v large_o illustrate_v both_o out_o of_o sacred_a and_o humane_a history_n 3._o jerusalem_n do_v not_o sit_v upon_o many_o water_n which_o be_v interpret_v to_o be_v people_n nation_n and_o tongue_n that_o be_v have_v not_o command_v or_o dominion_n over_o they_o as_o this_o woman_n whore_n or_o city_n be_v say_v to_o have_v rev._n 17._o 15._o and_o he_o say_v the_o water_n which_o thou_o see_v where_o the_o whore_n sit_v be_v peoples_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n the_o whole_a land_n of_o judea_n be_v under_o tribute_n to_o the_o roman_a government_n at_o that_o time_n luk._n 2._o 1._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o those_o day_n that_o there_o go_v out_o a_o decree_n from_o caesar_n augustus_n that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v tax_v and_o particular_o galilee_n nazareth_n judea_n and_o the_o city_n of_o david_n call_v bethlehem_n 4._o jerusalem_n be_v not_o capable_a to_o enchant_v and_o bewitch_v all_o nation_n round_o about_o she_o either_o by_o her_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n or_o by_o great_a gift_n and_o reward_n 1._o because_o the_o roman_a power_n keep_v she_o under_o and_o much_o in_o awe_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n not_o own_v nor_o subscribe_v to_o her_o religion_n 2._o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o religion_n block_v up_o her_o way_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n that_o she_o can_v not_o extend_v her_o influence_n to_o either_o neighbour_a or_o remote_a nation_n as_o this_o woman_n whore_n or_o city_n be_v say_v to_o do_v rev._n 18._o 23._o for_o thy_o merchant_n be_v the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o by_o thy_o sorcery_n be_v all_o nation_n deceive_v 5._o jerusalem_n though_o she_o be_v guilty_a of_o much_o blood_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o excellency_n and_o glory_n in_o solomon_n time_n kill_v prophet_n even_o all_o that_o be_v send_v unto_o she_o murder_v john_n baptist_n and_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n as_o also_o the_o bless_a martyr_n st._n stephen_n yet_o in_o she_o can_v not_o be_v find_v that_o great_a mass_n of_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v and_o myriad_o of_o christian_a saint_n that_o have_v be_v barbarous_o murder_v by_o massacre_n and_o public_a martyrdom_n since_o they_o be_v ruin_v and_o destroy_v by_o titus_n vespasian_n which_o we_o find_v positive_o charge_v upon_o this_o city_n babylon_n rev._n 17._o 6._o and_o i_o see_v the_o woman_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o i_o wonder_v with_o great_a admiration_n as_o indeed_o well_o he_o may_v as_o shall_v be_v show_v and_o in_o she_o be_v find_v the_o blood_n of_o prophet_n and_o of_o saint_n and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v slay_v upon_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v since_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n 6._o and_o last_o not_o to_o multiply_v more_o upon_o this_o head_n though_o jerusalem_n be_v fearful_o destroy_v as_o the_o history_n of_o josephus_n show_v yet_o shall_v she_o rise_v again_o be_v build_v upon_o her_o own_o heap_n be_v replenish_v with_o her_o own_o child_n which_o this_o city_n babylon_n under_o consideration_n shall_v never_o be_v after_o this_o catastrophe_n which_o john_n see_v visional_o come_v upon_o it_o rev._n 18._o 21._o and_o a_o mighty_a angel_n take_v up_o a_o stone_n like_o a_o great_a millstone_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o sea_n say_v thus_o with_o violence_n shall_v that_o great_a city_n babylon_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o shall_v be_v find_v no_o more_o at_o all_o 5._o it_o can_v be_v the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n for_o two_o reason_n
offer_v by_o the_o learned_a mede_n lib._n 3._o p._n 643._o 1._o because_o though_o they_o do_v arise_v to_o great_a power_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o their_o seat_n in_o that_o great_a city_n which_o in_o st._n john_n time_n reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o this_o babylon_n be_v express_o say_v to_o have_v 2._o that_o they_o do_v not_o rise_v by_o apostasy_n from_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o this_o babylon_n with_o her_o head_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n do_v for_o as_o this_o worthy_a author_n say_v the_o turk_n whatever_o he_o be_v can_v be_v no_o apostate_n because_o he_o be_v of_o a_o nation_n that_o never_o be_v christian._n to_o which_o we_o shall_v add_v something_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o head_n that_o we_o may_v discharge_v that_o debt_n we_o owe_v to_o god_n to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o world._n 3._o it_o can_v be_v the_o turk_n because_o they_o be_v not_o strange_o and_o wonderful_o mysterious_a which_o this_o babylon_n be_v say_v to_o be_v rev._n 17._o 5._o and_o upon_o her_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o i_o wherefore_o do_v thou_o marvel_n i_o will_v tell_v thou_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o beast_n which_o carry_v she_o which_o have_v the_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n what_o special_a mystery_n have_v show_v itself_o to_o the_o world_n from_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n more_o than_o from_o other_o common_a empire_n or_o kingdom_n that_o be_v matter_n of_o admiration_n to_o the_o wise_a of_o man_n be_v it_o matter_n of_o wonder_n that_o the_o turk_n do_v own_o but_o one_o true_a and_o most_o high_a god_n be_v it_o matter_n of_o wonder_n that_o they_o do_v own_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o a_o good_a man_n be_v it_o matter_n of_o high_a wonder_n that_o they_o prefer_v mahomet_n above_o jesus_n be_v it_o matter_n of_o wonder_n that_o they_o appear_v true_a to_o their_o contract_n in_o matter_n of_o civil_a commerce_n be_v it_o matter_n of_o high_a wonder_n for_o they_o to_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v what_o dominion_n they_o have_v and_o to_o enlarge_v it_o to_o make_v slave_n and_o prize_n of_o those_o profess_a enemy_n they_o take_v prisoner_n we_o say_v in_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v there_o any_o high_a mystery_n or_o matter_n of_o great_a wonder_n be_v thing_n common_a to_o all_o place_n and_o kingdom_n invest_v with_o power_n for_o 1._o do_v not_o the_o great_a king_n of_o literal_a babylon_n own_o the_o only_a true_a god_n yet_o still_o hold_v the_o church_n in_o captivity_n 2._o do_v not_o israel_n own_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o keep_v their_o idol_n after_o their_o revolt_n from_o judah_n 3._o do_v not_o judah_n prefer_v moses_n above_o and_o before_o christ_n and_o at_o that_o time_n when_o christ_n be_v personal_o among_o they_o work_v most_o stupendous_a miracle_n which_o do_v evince_v his_o divine_a mission_n nay_o do_v they_o not_o prefer_v a_o common_a and_o notorious_a villain_n before_o the_o bless_a lord_n of_o glory_n when_o they_o desire_v a_o murderer_n to_o be_v free_v and_o press_v hard_a to_o have_v the_o good_a and_o bless_a jesus_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n kill_v and_o do_v not_o this_o wise_a apostle_n know_v this_o to_o be_v true_a in_o fact_n and_o to_o equal_a nay_o outdo_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o turk_n or_o saracen_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v be_v accuse_v of_o and_o if_o st._n john_n be_v transport_v with_o astonish_a wonder_n at_o matter_n much_o less_o than_o he_o have_v see_v before_o do_v it_o not_o give_v good_a reason_n to_o suspect_v he_o of_o weakness_n and_o defect_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v surprise_v with_o the_o great_a wonder_n at_o far_o less_o thing_n than_o he_o have_v see_v and_o know_v before_o certain_o therefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v there_o be_v something_o more_o of_o mystery_n in_o john_n vision_n than_o what_o have_v be_v show_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o great_a turk_n or_o any_o other_o power_n and_o indeed_o undoubted_o the_o great_a mystery_n that_o ever_o the_o world_n be_v acquaint_v with_o for_o the_o character_n of_o babylon_n must_v either_o be_v singular_a that_o be_v such_o as_o none_o have_v beside_o or_o else_o they_o must_v be_v transcendent_a to_o go_v far_o beyond_o what_o other_o have_v in_o a_o lesser_a degree_n otherwise_o john_n may_v have_v keep_v the_o description_n of_o babylon_n to_o himself_o there_o be_v no_o clear_a distinction_n to_o render_v the_o wise_a and_o most_o discern_v man_n able_a to_o make_v judgement_n upon_o she_o the_o mystery_n then_o that_o be_v write_v upon_o this_o woman_n babylon_n seem_v clear_o to_o lie_v in_o these_o particular_n follow_v first_o that_o she_o do_v transact_v the_o most_o horrid_a wickedness_n that_o ever_o the_o world_n be_v or_o be_v like_a to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o second_o that_o under_o this_o monstrous_a gild_n she_o be_v prodigious_o confident_a and_o without_o all_o regret_n or_o show_v of_o shame_n and_o most_o impudent_o boast_v of_o the_o high_a sanctity_n and_o holiness_n in_o the_o world_n viz._n that_o she_o be_v total_o pure_a infallible_o certain_a and_o can_v err_v etc._n etc._n that_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o mystery_n to_o be_v wonder_v at_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v 1._o that_o a_o shepherd_n shall_v be_v a_o wolf_n and_o devour_v that_o flock_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o overseer_n or_o pastor_n of_o 2._o that_o a_o profess_a servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o mean_a of_o saint_n shall_v exalt_v himself_o above_o his_o master_n and_o not_o above_o his_o master_n only_o but_o above_o the_o god_n of_o his_o master_n and_o all_o other_o depute_a god_n that_o be_v vicegerent_n to_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n by_o slight_v and_o trample_v upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o prince_n dispense_n with_o the_o breach_n of_o they_o indulge_v the_o high_a violation_n thereof_o and_o set_v up_o his_o own_o invention_n tradition_n and_o decree_n above_o they_o insomuch_o that_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n less_o danger_n in_o their_o esteem_n in_o respect_n of_o excommunication_n and_o corporal_a punishment_n in_o this_o world_n or_o of_o damnation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v in_o break_v and_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o prince_n than_o there_o be_v in_o the_o violation_n or_o breach_n of_o the_o invention_n tradition_n and_o decree_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n and_o her_o head._n 3._o that_o one_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n pretend_v himself_o as_o a_o poor_a apostle_n vicar_n and_o successor_n of_o christ_n nay_o as_o the_o successor_n of_o a_o poor_a fisher_n man_n shall_v wear_v the_o high_a ensign_n of_o imperial_a dignity_n 4._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o lordly_a and_o prodigious_o insolent_a who_o be_v command_v to_o the_o great_a humility_n and_o abasement_n as_o to_o tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n kick_v off_o the_o crown_n of_o great_a prince_n and_o make_v king_n his_o foot_n page_n 5._o that_o he_o shall_v pretend_v high_o most_o high_o to_o god_n christ_n religion_n and_o holiness_n and_o yet_o espouse_v to_o himself_o as_o the_o darling_n of_o his_o bosom_n not_o only_o the_o chief_a son_n of_o belial_n but_o all_o that_o will_v decline_v sanctity_n and_o religion_n and_o embody_n themselves_o with_o those_o first_o bear_v son_n of_o wickedness_n that_o be_v of_o the_o high_a magnitude_n and_o engage_v themselves_o in_o such_o monstrous_a and_o butcherly_a practice_n that_o humane_a nature_n as_o such_o can_v never_o act_v in_o the_o butcher_a brute_n beast_n 6._o that_o the_o spouse_n of_o this_o prodigious_a monster_n shall_v in_o profession_n own_o god_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o religion_n of_o which_o justice_n and_o charity_n holiness_n and_o compassion_n be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n and_o yet_o under_o this_o vizard_n and_o in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o these_o pretension_n perpetrate_v the_o great_a and_o most_o unparalleled_a villainy_n in_o the_o world_n first_o in_o be_v the_o top_n of_o pride_n second_o in_o commit_v palpable_a idolatry_n three_o fill_v themselves_o with_o excess_n and_o drunkenness_n four_o to_o curse_v swear_v and_o blaspheme_v the_o very_a name_n they_o profess_v to_o be_v sacred_a five_o to_o cast_v down_o the_o truth_n burn_v the_o bible_n deface_v the_o holy_a book_n and_o law_n of_o god_n sixthly_a to_o assume_v not_o only_o a_o power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o violation_n in_o the_o high_a nature_n but_o to_o pardon_v and_o forgive_v they_o at_o pleasure_n seven_o to_o commit_v adultery_n and_o account_v it_o a_o venial_a crime_n eighthly_a to_o break_v
covenant_n to_o drive_v a_o trade_n in_o perjury_n forswear_v every_o thing_n they_o be_v just_o charge_v with_o and_o be_v full_o prove_v against_o they_o nine_o to_o foment_n war_n and_o broil_n in_o every_o kingdom_n and_o country_n where_o they_o have_v power_n contrive_v the_o ruin_n of_o town_n place_n city_n country_n and_o kingdom_n by_o fire_n sword_n and_o most_o cruel_a devastation_n ten_o to_o slaughter_n kill_v and_o barbarous_o murder_v both_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n even_o all_o that_o dare_v make_v a_o show_n of_o conscience_n and_o religion_n so_o far_o as_o to_o abhor_v and_o dissent_v from_o these_o villainy_n this_o be_v such_o a_o scheme_n of_o religion_n and_o systeme_n of_o divinity_n to_o come_v from_o a_o apostle_n a_o shepherd_n a_o vicar_n and_o successor_n of_o christ_n from_o a_o church_n sheep_n saint_n and_o the_o pretend_a follower_n of_o the_o meek_a peaceable_n and_o innocent_a jesus_n who_o teach_v altogether_o otherwise_o by_o his_o doctrine_n and_o example_n that_o it_o may_v well_o be_v wonder_v at_o and_o be_v the_o strange_a mystery_n that_o ever_o appear_v of_o which_o we_o challenge_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o show_v the_o like_a in_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n for_o man_n to_o swear_v lie_v and_o to_o forswear_v themselves_o and_o yet_o be_v true_a man_n to_o contrive_v rebellion_n murder_n and_o treason_n and_o yet_o be_v as_o innocent_a as_o the_o child_n unborn_a to_o be_v elevate_v to_o the_o high_a pinnacle_n of_o pride_n even_o above_o emperor_n and_o king_n above_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n his_o father_n and_o yet_o be_v humble_a and_o lowly_a to_o commit_v gross_a idolatry_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o live_a god_n to_o be_v fill_v with_o and_o make_v a_o trade_n of_o excess_n and_o drùnkenness_n and_o yet_o be_v pattern_n and_o standard_n of_o sobriety_n and_o temperance_n to_o cast_v down_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o ground_n deface_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o burn_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o true_a witness_n of_o it_o to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o great_a sinner_n themselves_o to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o adultery_n and_o yet_o be_v spotless_a and_o pure_a in_o heart_n to_o foment_n war_n and_o broil_n in_o every_o kingdom_n and_o country_n where_o they_o have_v power_n to_o contrive_v the_o ruin_n of_o town_n and_o place_n city_n country_n and_o kingdom_n by_o fire_n sword_n and_o cruel_a devastation_n and_o yet_o be_v as_o harmless_a as_o dove_n to_o all_o mankind_n the_o only_a son_n of_o peace_n and_o quietness_n to_o slaughter_n kill_v and_o barbarous_o murder_v man_n woman_n and_o child_n that_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o wicked_a as_o themselves_o and_o yet_o to_o be_v full_a of_o mercy_n tender_a pity_n and_o compassion_n a_o apostle_n shepherd_n &_o vicar_n successor_n of_o the_o meek_a and_o lamblike_a saviour_n and_o for_o the_o dear_a consort_n of_o this_o impious_a head_n on_o man_n of_o sin_n do_v not_o only_o confederate_a with_o he_o but_o a_o principal_a in_o all_o these_o unparalleled_a villainy_n and_o most_o butcherly_a and_o rapacious_a murder_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n of_o god_n the_o pure_a and_o spotless_a spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a sheep_n the_o harmless_a lamb_n the_o best_a of_o saint_n and_o close_a follower_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o always_o teach_v the_o contrary_a by_o his_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o meek_a example_n we_o say_v these_o thing_n not_o be_v find_v by_o secret_a search_n but_o be_v write_v in_o capital_a letter_n upon_o her_o forehead_n appear_v in_o open_a view_n to_o be_v read_v by_o every_o one_o that_o be_v not_o wilful_o blind_a let_v any_o one_o show_v we_o a_o great_a mystery_n in_o the_o world_n than_o this_o and_o we_o will_v subscribe_v to_o it_o 4._o it_o can_v be_v the_o turk_n because_o they_o be_v not_o the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o this_o babylon_n be_v say_v to_o be_v rev._n 17._o 5._o and_o upon_o her_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o here_o we_o demand_v in_o excuse_n to_o the_o turk_n this_o one_o thing_n from_o whence_o do_v proceed_v the_o murder_n massacre_n and_o martyrdom_n of_o all_o the_o religious_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o have_v die_v by_o violence_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o the_o space_n of_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n last_o pass_v and_o from_o what_o people_n do_v proceed_v those_o horrid_a oath_n blasphemy_n and_o execration_n that_o the_o world_n have_v woeful_o be_v acquaint_v with_o most_o horrid_a and_o strange_o astonish_v to_o repeat_v come_v these_o unparalleled_a degree_n of_o impiety_n from_o the_o turk_n from_o the_o waldensian_o lutherian_o calvinist_n or_o any_o nonconforming_a protestant_n no_o no_o why_o who_o language_n then_o be_v it_o who_o why_o it_o be_v the_o language_n of_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o bloody_a whore_n who_o bear_v these_o blasphemous_a son_n of_o her_o own_o body_n daily_o nourish_v they_o at_o her_o breast_n and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o their_o sinful_a course_n by_o account_v they_o the_o son_n the_o precious_a son_n of_o zion_n the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o darling_n of_o heaven_n the_o belove_a one_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o give_v they_o pardon_n for_o these_o bold_a and_o heaven_n dare_v sin_n as_o often_o as_o they_o commit_v they_o and_o come_v to_o ask_v pardon_n for_o they_o so_o that_o sin_n and_o pardon_n be_v as_o constant_a and_o common_a with_o they_o as_o breathe_v and_o eat_v and_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o seal_n and_o confirm_v lie_n which_o be_v the_o more_o heavy_a heinous_a and_o prodigious_a for_o if_o man_n may_v lie_v by_o allowance_n may_v kill_v and_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n without_o control_n of_o conscience_n and_o church_n censure●_n may_v swear_v and_o blaspheme_n and_o challenge_v god_n himself_o to_o damn_v they_o may_v burn_v man_n for_o religion_n consume_v city_n to_o ash_n conspire_v the_o death_n of_o king_n the_o ruin_n and_o overthrow_n of_o kingdom_n whore_n and_o murder_v infant_n and_o yet_o be_v account_v a_o church_n the_o member_n and_o part_n of_o it_o call_v saint_n holy_a child_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n then_o may_v we_o claim_v a_o patent_n and_o take_v a_o licence_n to_o change_v the_o name_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o alter_v the_o idea_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n call_v and_o account_n beelzebub_n a_o good_a god_n and_o all_o his_o black_a tribe_n the_o pure_a saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a call_v the_o low_a region_n of_o blackness_n and_o darkness_n to_o which_o he_o be_v confine_v the_o heaven_n of_o glory_n and_o eternal_a light_n of_o which_o thing_n we_o ought_v in_o justice_n to_o clear_v the_o turk_n until_o witness_n of_o undoubted_a credit_n shall_v come_v forth_o and_o evidence_n that_o the_o turkish_a state_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o as_o great_a abomination_n as_o these_o be_v 5._o and_o last_o the_o turk_n can_v be_v mystery_n babylon_n because_o they_o never_o be_v make_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n which_o this_o woman_n mystery_n babylon_n be_v express_o say_v to_o be_v rev._n 17._o 6._o and_o i_o see_v the_o woman_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o i_o wonder_v with_o great_a admiration_n now_o let_v any_o man_n show_v such_o bloodshed_n saint_n bloodshed_n by_o massacre_n and_o martyrdom_n for_o the_o profess_v of_o christianity_n which_o must_v be_v if_o the_o text_n be_v answer_v in_o that_o clause_n blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n by_o the_o turk_n either_o within_o their_o dominion_n or_o without_o as_o have_v be_v shed_v by_o a_o generation_n near_a home_n and_o we_o shall_v become_v like_o the_o man_n without_o the_o wedding_n garment_n whole_o speechless_a and_o say_v not_o a_o word_n more_o about_o babylon_n 6._o now_o that_o babylon_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v great_a rome_n that_o in_o former_a time_n reign_v and_o in_o suture_a time_n shall_v be_v destroy_v be_v own_v by_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n themselves_z and_o be_v assert_v by_o all_o protestant_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o narrow_a point_n the_o one_o whole_o confine_v babylon_n to_o rome_n heathen_a and_o there_o total_o to_o terminate_v the_o other_o bring_v babylon_n down_o lower_v to_o rome_n antichristian_a or_o papal_a rome_n now_o that_o this_o work_n may_v be_v to_o edification_n and_o more_o full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o great_a case_n we_o shall_v advance_v to_o the_o last_o and_o chief_a
be_v that_o great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n revel_v 18_o 8_o for_o her_o sin_n which_o god_n have_v remember_v which_o have_v reach_v unto_o heaven_n therefore_o shall_v he●_n plague_n come_v in_o one_o day_n death_n and_o mourn_v and_o famine_n and_o she_o shall_v be_v utter_o burn●_n with_o fire_n for_o strong_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n w●●_n judge_v she_o v_o 11_o 12_o 13._o all_o sort_n of_o merchandise_n traffic_n trade_n and_o commer●_n with_o humane_a society_n shall_v cease_v so_o as_o to_o be_v no_o more_o in_o she_o at_o all_o and_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o she_o in_o fullness_n enjoy_v before_o even_o al●_n thing_n that_o be_v dainty_a and_o goodly_a be_v no●_n depart_v from_o she_o and_o shall_v find_v they_o 〈◊〉_d more_o at_o all_o ver_fw-la 14._o for_o in_o a_o hour_n be_v s●●_n make_v desolate_a and_o a_o mighty_a angel_n take_v up_o a_o stone_n like_o a_o great_a millstone_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o sea_n say_v thus_o with_o violence_n shall_v that_o great_a city_n babylon_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o shall_v be_v find_v no_o more_o at_o all_o ver_fw-la 21._o and_o the_o voice_n of_o harper_n and_o musician_n and_o of_o piper_n and_o trumpeter_n shall_v be_v hear_v no_o more_o at_o all_o in_o thou_o and_o no_o craftsman_n of_o whatsoever_o craft_n he_o be_v shall_v be_v find_v any_o more_o in_o thou_o and_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o millstone_n shall_v be_v hear_v no_o more_o at_o all_o in_o thou_o ver_fw-la 22._o and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o candle_n shall_v shine_v no_o more_o at_o all_o in_o thou_o and_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o of_o the_o bride_n shall_v be_v hear_v no_o more_o at_o all_o in_o thou_o verse_n 23._o but_o the_o place_n seat_n and_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o utter_o ruin_v as_o to_o be_v no_o more_o for_o ever_o a_o place_n of_o trade_n traffic_n merchandise_n and_o humane_a society_n when_o the_o heathen_a power_n of_o rome_n end_v ergo_fw-la rome_n heathen_a can_v be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n under_o present_a consideration_n who_o seat_n or_o city_n have_v since_o have_v a_o powerful_a government_n reign_v in_o pride_n and_o pomp_n for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n vii_o as_o touch_v that_o notion_n of_o the_o papist_n i._n e._n that_o by_o this_o great_a whore_n mystery_n babylon_n be_v mean_v rome_n after_o she_o shall_v apostatise_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o paganism_n again_o at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v such_o a_o opinion_n that_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n beside_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n themselves_o reject_v it_o as_o improbable_a and_o detestable_a as_o our_o annotator_n observe_v for_o then_o sr._n john_n in_o the_o revelation_n pass_v by_o in_o utter_a silence_n all_o the_o transacting_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n under_o papal_a rome_n even_o ever_o since_o the_o seven_o head_n or_o christian_a emperor_n government_n go_v off_o of_o the_o stage_n which_o be_v near_o 1260_o year_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o suppose_v beside_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o rome_n in_o either_o of_o the_o other_o notion_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 1._o because_o antichrist_n be_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n 2_o thes._n 2._o 4._o as_o god_n therefore_o not_o in_o a_o pagan_a city_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquiry_n be_v work_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o v_o 7._o the_o roman_a empire_n hinder_v the_o appearance_n of_o antichrist_n till_o the_o pope_n have_v wring_v rome_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n and_o be_v the_o sole_a ruler_n there_o then_o antichrist_n show_v himself_o 2._o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o say_v of_o this_o great_a whore_n or_o this_o babylon_n but_o admirable_o agree_v to_o rome_n in_o its_o present_a state_n we_o shall_v conclude_v with_o the_o whole_a if_o by_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v not_o mean_v the_o whole_a world_n of_o wicked_a man_n nor_o old_a chaldean_a babylon_n nor_o jerusalem_n the_o turk_n nor_o saracen_n nor_o rome_n in_o its_o heathenish_a state_n nor_o rome_n after_o she_o shall_v desert_v the_o pope_n and_o turn_v again_o to_o paganism_n than_o it_o must_v be_v papal_a rome_n or_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o she_o be_v none_o of_o the_o former_a six_o we_o have_v prove_v ergo_fw-la she_o be_v papal_a rome_n now_o to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o second_o chapter_n we_o shall_v state_n this_o argument_n follow_v if_o all_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n leave_v we_o upon_o divine_a record_n to_o know_v mystery_n babylon_n by_o do_v most_o apt_o and_o direct_o agree_v to_o rome_n papal_n then_o rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o all_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n leave_v upon_o divine_a record_n do_v most_o apt_o and_o direct_o agree_v to_o rome_n papal_n or_o the_o present_a state_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n chap._n ii_o wherein_o be_v clear_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o mark_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n do_v full_o meet_v in_o and_o agree_v to_o rome_n papal_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o of_o all_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v babylon_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o a_o woman_n which_o import_v either_o a_o single_a person_n rank_v in_o the_o feminine_a gender_n or_o a_o body_n of_o people_n relate_v to_o some_o head_n husband_n or_o public_a person_n to_o who_o she_o be_v join_v in_o wedlock_n by_o covenant_n or_o matrimonial_a contract_n as_o eve_n be_v relate_v to_o adam_n &_o therefore_o call_v woman_n or_o as_o judah_n &_o israel_n who_o be_v join_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o therefore_o call_v a_o woman_n or_o as_o the_o true_a church_n now_o marry_v or_o join_v to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o call_v a_o woman_n a_o single_a person_n as_o eve_n be_v she_o can_v be_v because_o the_o character_n give_v of_o she_o in_o respect_n of_o her_o state_n and_o action_n do_v no_o way_n comport_v with_o it_o she_o must_v therefore_o be_v a_o body_n of_o people_n relate_v to_o some_o head_n husband_n or_o public_a person_n as_o judah_n and_o israel_n of_o old_a be_v who_o be_v often_o call_v by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o woman_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n babylon_n before_o the_o degeneracy_n where_o a_o people_n join_v in_o matrimonial_a contract_n by_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o profession_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god._n 1._o mystery_n babylon_n it_o appear_v from_o hence_o import_v a_o body_n of_o people_n that_o be_v once_o unite_v in_o a_o solemn_a gospel_n covenant_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o hence_o metaphorical_o call_v a_o woman_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n set_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o woman_n be_v array_v in_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a etc._n etc._n parallel_n rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o body_n a_o great_a body_n of_o people_n which_o before_o their_o apostasy_n be_v a_o true_a church_n by_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o profession_n unite_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o her_o public_a head_n and_o husband_n rom._n 1._o 6._o among_o who_o be_v you_o also_o the_o call_v of_o jesus_n christ._n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o rome_n belove_v of_o god_n call_v to_o be_v saint_n 2._o mystery_n babylon_n be_v a_o city_n a_o very_a great_a mystical_a city_n in_o a_o threefold_a respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o power_n rev_n 17._o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o people_n rev._n 18._o 10._o 16._o 18_o 19_o 21._o 3._o in_o respect_n of_o place_n or_o residence_n where_o this_o power_n and_o people_n be_v seat_v city_n be_v indefinite_o take_v for_o either_o of_o these_o or_o comprehend_v all_o as_o in_o these_o instance_n psal._n 121._o isa._n 14._o 31._o act_n 19_o 28._o parallel_n so_o likewise_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o city_n a_o very_a great_a mystical_a city_n and_o may_v be_v so_o call_v in_o a_o threefold_a consideration_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o power_n which_o be_v twosold_a 1._o civil_a 2._o ecclesiastical_a signify_v by_o two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb._n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o people_n which_o be_v great_a the_o fame_n of_o which_o people_n as_o a_o mystical_a city_n or_o church_n be_v great_a before_o the_o power_n and_o chief_a dominion_n of_o the_o place_n be_v join_v with_o it_o as_o a_o church_n which_o come_v in_o by_o the_o apostasy_n rom._n 1._o 8._o first_o i_o thank_v my_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o you_o all_o that_o your_o faith_n be_v speak_v of_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world._n and_o since_o they_o adulterate_v from_o their_o primitive_a purity_n and_o become_v antichristian_a they_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v a_o great_a people_n no_o unite_a body_n call_v themselves_o a_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o number_n and_o for_o fame_n come_v near_o they_o 3._o
great_a in_o respect_n of_o place_n or_o chief_a residence_n where_o this_o power_n and_o great_a people_n be_v seat_v and_o by_o way_n of_o eminency_n as_o a_o mystical_a city_n it_o may_v indeed_o well_o bear_v the_o bell_n away_o for_o what_o people_n have_v give_v further_a occasion_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n people_n and_o place_n of_o chief_a residence_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o rome_n have_v as_o will_v hereafter_o be_v make_v more_o evident_a iii_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v not_o only_o a_o mystical_a city_n and_o woman_n but_o a_o bad_a woman_n and_o city_n a_o city_n of_o confusion_n for_o so_o the_o word_n babel_n or_o babylon_n signify_v viz._n evil_a or_o confusion_n parallel_n rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o a_o mystical_a woman_n city_n but_o a_o very_a evil_a woman_n a_o city_n indeed_o of_o confusion_n there_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lamb_n much_o speak_v of_o but_o his_o doctrine_n contemn_v slight_v and_o under_o value_v and_o his_o law_n and_o ordinance_n trample●_n upon_o and_o notorious_o violate_v his_o institution_n not_o regard_v nor_o his_o example_n imitate_v either_o by_o the_o bishop_n himself_o his_o cardinal_n or_o inferior_a order_n they_o have_v his_o humility_n and_o self-denial_n only_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o none_o of_o it_o i●_n their_o heart_n like_o those_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o who_o in_o word_n profess_v they_o know_v god_n but_o in_o work●_n deny_v he_o for_o under_o this_o verbal_a and_o pretend_a humility_n lie_v cover_v the_o great_a pride_n in_o the_o world_n and_o under_o this_o verbal_a meekness_n and_o self-denial_n the_o great_a oppression_n cruelty_n superstition_n covetousness_n vain_a glory_n and_o love_n of_o the_o world_n that_o ever_o be_v manifest_a as_o appear_v by_o their_o pompous_a and_o glister_a garb_n their_o cruel_a persecution_n and_o the_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n bring_v in_o from_o all_o part_n of_o their_o dominion_n by_o sleight_n cunning_a and_o deceitful_a cheat_n beside_o a_o mere_a hodg-podg_a of_o principle_n one_o order_n or_o fraternity_n profess_v that_o which_o another_o write_v against_o and_o cry_v down_o which_o be_v the_o more_o strange_a to_o come_v from_o a_o church_n infallible_a and_o that_o can_v err_v beside_o the_o strange_a mixture_n in_o their_o visible_a worship_n of_o tradition_n and_o humane_a invention_n of_o lie_v and_o diabolical_a trick_n of_o blessing_n by_o a_o cross_n pardon_n and_o indulgence_n for_o money_n consecrate_v holy_a water_n and_o cleanse_v by_o it_o which_o be_v too_o numerous_a and_o tedious_a to_o relate_v and_o less_o needful_a to_o mention_v because_o so_o well_o know_v to_o all_o man_n and_o let_v any_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v to_o religion_n be_v compare_v to_o they_o for_o supernumeraries_n trifle_v &_o ●nsignificant_a ceremony_n crowd_v into_o their_o pretend_a worship_n nay_o let_v all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o respect_n and_o they_o will_v be_v find_v inconceivable_o want_v for_o which_o we_o have_v this_o reason_n to_o ●udge_v she_o to_o be_v babylon_n or_o the_o city_n of_o confusion_n if_o there_o be_v more_o confusion_n in_o contrariety_n of_o principle_n practice_n contradict_v pretension_n supernumeraries_n foolish_a and_o unscripture_n invention_n crowd_v into_o their_o visible_a worship_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o any_o sort_n of_o people_n pretend_v to_o religion_n in_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o then_o be_v rome_n papal_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a babylon_n or_o city_n of_o confusion_n but_o there_o be_v more_o confusion_n in_o the_o forementioned_a respect_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o in_o any_o other_o church_n or_o people_n in_o the_o world_n pretend_v to_o religion_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n iv._o mystery_n babylon_n be_v not_o only_o set_v forth_o 〈◊〉_d a_o woman_n and_o city_n of_o confusion_n but_o be_v also_o call_v a_o whore_n a_o word_n which_o carry_v in_o it_o one_o of_o the_o high_a impeachment_n yet_o no_o other_o that_o be_v give_v to_o israel_n judah_n &_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o day_n of_o old_a upon_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n isa._n 57_o 3._o and_o 16._o 17._o and_o hos._n 4._o 8._o 5._o 3._o for_o they_o be_v join_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n as_o a_o woman_n be_v to_o a_o husband_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n to_o serve_v he_o in_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n do_v like_a to_o a_o adulterous_a woman_n break_v wedlock_n and_o set_v up_o other_o lover_n or_o idol_n in_o his_o stead_n and_o continue_v so_o a_o long_a time_n till_o a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n w●_n give_v and_o god_n proclaim_v they_o adulteress_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o their_o husband_n nor_o they_o his_o wife_n but_o a_o whore_n and_o divorce_v yet_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o they_o though_o they_o worship_v idol_n cry_v the_o temple_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v we_o and_o will_v by_o all_o mean_n be_v account_v the_o church_n of_o god._n paral._n even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n rome_n papal_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o call_v a_o woman_n but_o according_a to_o scripture_n history_n and_o notorious_a matter_n of_o fact_n she_o be_v a_o whore_n have_v utter_o adulterate_v from_o what_o she_o be_v once_o and_o so_o may_v just_o bear_v that_o brand_n or_o black_a name_n for_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n she_o join_v herself_o to_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v his_o by_o firm_a tie_n of_o a_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o profession_n and_o as_o a_o renown_a spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n own_a and_o profess_v he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o heathenish_a rome_n and_o receive_v the_o apostle_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n among_o they_o and_o withstand_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o emperor_n suffer_v persecution_n and_o have_v their_o faith_n speak_v of_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o like_o israel_n of_o old_a she_o leave_v god_n jesus_n christ_n and_o almost_o all_o his_o holy_a law_n and_o ordinance_n and_o make_v idol_n to_o herself_o of_o saint_n angel_n relic_n and_o image_n upon_o which_o she_o dote_v and_o forsake_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o work_n and_o appearance_n of_o the_o vile_a person_n or_o man_n of_o sin_n who_o exalt_v himself_o into_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n and_o become_v her_o head_n by_o which_o mean_v she_o be_v so_o far_o degenerate_v from_o what_o she_o once_o be_v that_o she_o retain_v nothing_o of_o what_o real_o appertain_v to_o true_a godliness_n but_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o god_n christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n have_v corrupt_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n her_o first_o husband_n and_o notorious_o abandon_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o he_o take_v this_o vile_a person_n the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o head_n and_o chief_a guide_n and_o set_v he_o up_o in_o the_o place_n of_o and_o in_o dignity_n above_o christ_n her_o first_o head_n and_o only_o guide_v of_o her_o youth_n and_o yet_o like_a israel_n of_o old_a still_o cry_v the_o true_a church_n the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o mother_n church_n be_v we_o have_v on_o her_o forehead_n a_o strange_a mystery_n write_v i._n e._n god_n christ_n truth_n verity_n unity_n universality_n infallibility_n and_o yet_o with_o that_o on_o her_o forehead_n and_o in_o her_o heart_n too_o be_v write_v devil_n pope_n lie_v blasphemy_n idolatry_n deceit_n perjury_n blood_n and_o horrible_a cruelty_n towards_o the_o best_a of_o man_n profess_v christ_n and_o religion_n in_o uprightness_n and_o truth_n for_o which_o her_o abominable_a idolatry_n and_o change_v of_o her_o first_o head_n and_o husband_n and_o set_v up_o this_o vile_a person_n with_o which_o she_o commit_v most_o horrid_a lewdness_n or_o spiritual_a whoredom_n together_o with_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n she_o be_v rank_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n among_o the_o worst_a of_o woman_n and_o style_v the_o great_a whore_n and_o as_o her_o type_n and_o predecessor_n of_o old_a a_o well_o favour_v harlot_n but_o since_o her_o spiritual_a adultery_n and_o whoredom_n have_v be_v so_o apparent_o prove_v upon_o she_o by_o many_o worthy_a and_o eminent_a author_n or_o protestant_a writer_n we_o shall_v conclude_v this_o black_a character_n with_o this_o follow_a argument_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o mark_n if_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o profess_v people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v so_o apparent_o decline_v or_o adulterate_v from_o what_o they_o once_o be_v desert_v the_o holy_a headship_n doctrine_n example_n and_o right_a government_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v set_v up_o another_o visible_a public_a and_o universal_a head_n
of_o the_o church_n in_o room_n and_o stead_n of_o he_o who_o power_n law_n and_o edict_n be_v prefer_v above_o and_o before_o the_o authority_n law_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n or_o the_o great_a whore_n speak_v of_o but_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o profess_v people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n nor_o throughout_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v so_o apparent_o decline_v adulterate_a and_o desert_v the_o holy_a headship_n doctrine_n example_n and_o right_a government_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a whore._n if_o any_o shall_v think_v this_o argument_n not_o weighty_a let_v they_o show_v if_o they_o can_v that_o some_o other_o people_n different_a from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v as_o great_a or_o like_a change_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o headship_n and_o matter●_n thereto_o pertain_v so_o as_o this_o black_a character_n of_o whore_n great_a whore_n may_v more_o fit_o and_o full_o be_v make_v to_o meet_v upon_o they_o and_o we_o must_v confess_v our_o argument_n not_o weighty_a but_o till_o then_o we_o conclude_v it_o carry_v conviction_n in_o the_o bowel_n of_o it_o v._o mystery_n babylon_n be_v not_o only_o set_v forth_o by_o a_o woman_n city_n of_o confusion_n and_o whore_n but_o also_o a_o great_a city_n and_o great_a whore_n and_o the_o great_a city_n be_v divide_v etc._n etc._n rev._n 16._o 19_o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o great_a city_n rev._n 17._o 18._o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n rev._n 17._o 1._o i_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o reassume_v this_o character_n again_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n note_v this_o as_o a_o most_o eminent_a mark_n of_o she_o paral_a now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o a_o whore_n and_o mystical_a city_n but_o a_o very_a great_a city_n and_o whore_n will_v yet_o appear_v more_o evident_a 1._o she_o have_v a_o great_a name_n no_o name_n so_o great_a in_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o the_o name_n of_o rome_n she_o be_v call_v a_o queen_n and_o be_v join_v by_o contract_n to_o her_o universal_a head_n viz._n the_o pope_n or_o man_n of_o sin_n she_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v far_o great_a than_o emperor_n and_o temporal_a prince_n and_o pretend_v a_o power_n to_o give_v they_o their_o crown_n and_o set_v they_o upon_o their_o head_n and_o kick_v they_o off_o again_o at_o pleasure_n 2._o great_a in_o power_n she_o give_v rule_n and_o law_n to_o kingdom_n advance_v her_o ecclesiastical_a edict_n above_o temporal_a she_o set_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o her_o son_n above_o secular_a jurisdiction_n make_v they_o unacountable_a and_o pretend_v a_o power_n to_o absolve_v to_o bless_v and_o curse_v at_o her_o pleasure_n and_o without_o controversy_n the_o lesser_a be_v bless_v of_o the_o great_a 3._o great_a in_o multitude_n there_o be_v no_o people_n beside_o that_o be_v in_o a_o spiritual_a unite_a body_n and_o visible_a community_n profess_v christianity_n comparable_a to_o she_o for_o multitude_n or_o the_o vast_a number_n of_o her_o child_n 4._o great_a in_o action_n vile_a action_n such_o as_o depose_n and_o poison_v prince_n foment_v jealousy_n raise_v war_n set_v nation_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n invade_v right_n and_o property_n of_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n by_o subtle_a insnarement_n and_o cunning_a stratagem_n make_v tumult_n and_o uproar_n contrive_v masscre_n burn_a city_n and_o carry_v on_o dreadful_a devastation_n where_o she_o be_v gainsay_v and_o that_o which_o add_v to_o her_o greatness_n be_v that_o invincible_a confidence_n she_o have_v that_o all_o person_n and_o thing_n be_v make_v for_o she_o and_o give_v to_o she_o so_o that_o all_o thing_n she_o do_v be_v allow_v as_o legal_a and_o just_a in_o heaven_n though_o the_o action_n be_v most_o vile_a and_o as_o unhuman_a as_o any_o can_v be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o undeceived_a mortal_a from_o whence_o we_o shall_v frame_v this_o argument_n arg._n if_o there_o be_v no_o unite_a body_n of_o people_n or_o visible_a community_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v so_o great_a in_o name_n power_n multitudes_z and_o action_n vile_a action_n as_o rome_z papal_z or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o unite_a body_n of_o people_n or_o community_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v so_o great_a in_o name_n power_n multitude_n and_o action_n vile_a action_n as_o rome_z papal_z or_o church_n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n be_v this_o great_a city_n whore_n or_o mystery_n babylon_n vi_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v upon_o many_o water_n which_o be_v expound_v to_o be_v people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o tongue_n rev._n 17._o 1_o 17._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o the_o water_n which_o thou_o see_v where_o the_o whore_n sit_v be_v people_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n which_o according_a to_o the_o learned_a mede_n peter_n du_n moulin_n and_o other_o famous_a protestant_a writer_n be_v more_o than_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o ten_o considerable_a part_n which_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n fall_v into_o not_o long_o before_o the_o pope_n that_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o head_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n assume_v the_o imperial_a seat_n and_o throne_n which_o afterward_o become_v ten_o kingdom_n with_o crown_a head_n assist_v the_o beast_n against_o the_o lamb_n and_o persecute_v of_o the_o saint_n distinguish_v into_o ten_o kingdom_n of_o the_o empire_n i._o of_o germany_n ii_o france_n iii_o england_n iv._o scotland_n v._o denmark_n vi_o polonia_n vii_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n viii_o the_o kingdom_n of_o navarre_n ix_o the_o kingdom_n of_o hungary_n x._o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n and_o sicily_n all_o which_o rome_n papal_a have_v in_o possession_n as_o our_o french_a author_n say_v in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o paral._n so_o then_o it_o appear_v evident_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v direct_o this_o mark_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n also_o she_o sit_v upon_o many_o water_n viz._n people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o language_n that_o she_o sit_v upon_o or_o rule_v over_o more_o than_o one_o three_o part_n of_o the_o ten_o which_o be_v former_o under_o the_o roman_a empire_n in_o its_o civil_a state_n be_v evident_a which_o more_o than_o one_o three_o part_n have_v since_o fall_v into_o ten_o kingdom_n under_o the_o government_n of_o ten_o crown_a head_n and_o have_v all_o agree_v to_o give_v their_o power_n to_o this_o last_o beast_n as_o they_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n with_o he_o according_a to_o what_o be_v foretell_v which_o make_v good_a what_o st._n john●n_v ●n_z the_o apocalypse_n have_v make_v know_v as_o also_o daniel_n concern_v the_o little_a horn_n which_o have_v ●_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n who_o look_n be_v more_o stout_a than_o his_o fellow_n dan._n 7._o by_o who_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n of_o the_o roman_a power_n in_o its_o civil_a state_n be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n and_o in_o their_o place_n succeed_v ten_o king_n or_o crown_v head_n who_o have_v their_o crown_n give_v to_o they_o by_o this_o last_o beast_n and_o as_o they_o have_v their_o crown_n give_v by_o and_o hold_v their_o kingly_a power_n under_o the_o pope_n little_a horn_n last_o beast_n or_o man_n of_o sin_n in_o requital_n of_o his_o fatherly_a care_n in_o give_v his_o son_n so_o great_a a_o patrimony_n so_o they_o give_v their_o power_n to_o he_o and_o engage_v against_o the_o lamb_n in_o make_v war_n with_o and_o persecute_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o will_v do_v so_o till_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n and_o revelation_n of_o st._n john_n etc._n etc._n be_v fulfil_v which_o ten_o crown_a head_n answer_v to_o the_o ten_o toe_n in_o nebuchadnezar_n image_n and_o to_o the_o ten_o horn_n in_o this_o 17_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n which_o be_v so_o concern_v in_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n and_o who_o will_v at_o last_o by_o the_o gracious_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o be_v some_o of_o they_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o lamb_n and_o turn_v to_o hate_v the_o whore_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a who_o before_o they_o for_o a_o long_a time_n join_v with_o and_o support_v and_o for_o who_o pleasure_n they_o do_v persecute_v the_o saint_n which_o ten_o state_n or_o kingdom_n be_v by_o our_o french_a author_n peter_n du_fw-fr moulin_n in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o accomplishment_n
of_o the_o prophecy_n page_n 345._o distinguish_v as_o we_o before_o show_v all_o which_o kingdom_n as_o king_n james_n the_o first_o in_o his_o learned_a work_n make_v out_o take_v their_o rise_n with_o rome_n papal_n upon_o the_o division_n or_o ruin_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n in_o its_o civil_a state_n the_o body_n of_o which_o kingdom_n may_v well_o be_v call_v many_o water_n viz._n people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o tongue_n or_o people_n of_o several_a language_n which_o be_v as_o well_o know_v to_o have_v be_v under_o the_o usurpation_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o papal_n rome_n as_o it_o be_v know_v there_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v papist_n in_o the_o world_n which_o do_v full_o answer_v to_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o the_o text_n viz._n the_o water_n which_o thou_o see_v whereon_o the_o whore_n sit_v be_v people_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n rev._n 17._o 18._o 2._o this_o be_v very_o evident_a yet_o further_o by_o she_o make_v all_o the_o european_a kingdom_n and_o merchant_n thereof_o rich_a that_o traffic_n by_o sea_n by_o the_o great_a expense_n of_o all_o commodity_n which_o be_v swallow_v up_o by_o reason_n of_o her_o pride_n and_o bravery_n which_o can_v never_o be_v effect_v unless_o she_o have_v nation_n and_o multitude_n under_o her_o jurisdiction_n to_o contribute_v to_o her_o great_a pride_n and_o luxury_n 3._o a_o three_o instance_n to_o confirm_v it_o be_v the_o numberless_a number_n of_o good_a christian_n she_o have_v prey_v upon_o and_o murder_v in_o most_o of_o these_o kingdom_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o witness_v against_o her_o idolatry_n and_o usurpation_n which_o show_v what_o power_n she_o have_v over_o these_o nation_n and_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n 4._o and_o last_o the_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n she_o have_v extort_a and_o squeeze_v from_o these_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n to_o uphold_v her_o pretend_a right_n preeminency_n and_o usurpation_n over_o they_o which_o you_o have_v a_o account_n of_o by_o several_a worthy_a writer_n who_o full_o witness_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o we_o say_v upon_o this_o respect_n and_o from_o the_o whole_a we_o shall_v draw_v this_o argument_n and_o proceed_v arg._n if_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o people_n profess_a church_n or_o state_n in_o the_o world_n under_o any_o single_a denomination_n that_o sit_v upon_o i._n e._n command_n or_o bear_v rule_v over_o people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o tongue_n as_o rome_z papal_z or_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v then_o rome_n papal_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o people_n profess_a church_n or_o state_n under_o any_o single_a denomination_n that_o sit_v upon_o i._n e._n command_n or_o bear_v rule_v over_o people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o tongue_n as_o rome_z papal_z or_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n to_o the_o establish_v this_o argument_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n consist_v but_o of_o these_o two_o part_n viz._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n consider_v as_o head_n and_o body_n and_o those_o who_o dissent_v from_o she_o who_o be_v so_o inconsiderable_a whether_o the_o waldenses_n albingenses_n hugonot_n or_o other_o party_n of_o protestant_n that_o no_o one_o party_n of_o nay_o if_o we_o put_v they_o altogether_o can_v be_v say_v to_o sit_v upon_o i._n e._n command_n or_o bear_v rule_n over_o people_n multitude_n nation_n and_o tongue_n to_o answer_v to_o this_o character_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n the_o waldenses_n and_o hugonot_n have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v a_o persecute_a people_n the_o lutheran_n never_o get_v up_o so_o high_a as_o to_o command_v many_o state_n or_o kingdom_n or_o people_n of_o many_o language_n great_a britain_n though_o a_o protestant_a state_n or_o kingdom_n come_v not_o up_o to_o answer_v this_o character_n much_o less_o the_o seven_o unite_a province_n that_o of_o late_a time_n revolt_v from_o the_o crown_n of_o spain_n so_o that_o if_o rome_n papal_n have_v do_v so_o and_o no_o other_o people_n that_o dissent_n from_o she_o have_v ever_o yet_o nor_o can_v do_v the_o like_a than_o this_o prove_v rome_n papal_a that_o great_a whore_n viz_o mystery_n babylon_n that_o sit_v upon_o many_o water_n etc._n etc._n vii_o the_o seven_o mark_n or_o character_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v this_o viz._n she_o be_v such_o a_o whore_n that_o king_n and_o great_a man_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v say_v to_o commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o see_v the_o text_n rev._n 17._o 2._o with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v commit_v fornication_n i._n e_o spiritual_a fornication_n or_o fornication_n in_o a_o mystery_n or_o after_o a_o mysterious_a manner_n such_o as_o jerusalem_n of_o old_a be_v charge_v with_o 2_o chron._n 22._o 1._o isa._n 16._o 26._o which_o be_v a_o follow_v like_o idolatry_n that_o this_o woman_n babylon_n have_v do_v viz._n corrupt_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o adore_v idol_n or_o make_v of_o image_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o true_a god_n by_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o worship_v he_o and_o so_o great_a be_v her_o fornication_n that_o it_o be_v say_v she_o do_v corrupt_v the_o earth_n with_o it_o paral._n now_o that_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o black_a mark_n and_o character_n upon_o she_o be_v most_o evident_a viz._n such_o a_o whore_n that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o she_o have_v corrupt_v the_o earth_n with_o her_o filthy_a fornication_n they_o follow_v her_o abominable_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n 1._o for_o first_o have_v she_o adore_v the_o pope_n as_o her_o lord_n god_n universal_a head_n and_o infallible_a bishop_n set_v he_o up_o above_o all_o law_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v so_o intoxicated_a with_o the_o cup_n of_o her_o fornication_n that_o they_o likewise_o have_v do_v the_o same_o 2._o have_v and_o do_v she_o worship_v the_o virgin_n mary_n angel_n and_o many_o depart_a saint_n even_o so_o have_v and_o do_v many_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n likewise_o 3._o have_v she_o adore_v image_n the_o crucifix_n the_o host_n and_o picture_n of_o pretend_a saint_n even_o so_o she_o have_v cause_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o do_v likewise_o 4._o have_v she_o foolish_o and_o idolatroul_o de_fw-mi base_v herself_o with_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o relick●_n of_o know_a and_o unknown_a saint_n so_o the_o very_a same_o have_v she_o cause_v the_o king_n and_o great_a man_n to_o do_v also_o 5._o have_v she_o gross_o and_o superstitious_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o false_a manner_n by_o crowd_v in_o a_o innumerous_a train_n of_o detestable_a and_o foolish_a foppery_n into_o his_o worship_n and_o pretend_a service_n which_o he_o never_o ordain_v as_o candle_n candlestick_n altar_n vestment_n hospital_n salt_n oil_n holy_a water_n bead_n and_o a_o world_n of_o such_o like_a trumpery_n so_o have_v the_o king_n and_o noble_a one_o of_o the_o earth_n do_v and_o still_o do_v as_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n king_n of_o france_n spain_n portugal_n and_o england_n former_o and_o of_o late_a also_o from_o whence_o we_o will_v draw_v this_o argument_n arg._n if_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v to_o a_o church_n state_n that_o have_v set_v up_o idolatry_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n and_o with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v joint_o agree_v and_o comply_v as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v than_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o mystery_n babylon_n speak_v of_o but_o there_o be_v no_o body_n of_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v to_o a_o church_n state_n that_o have_v set_v up_o idolatry_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n and_o with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v comply_v as_o rome_n papal_n etc._n etc._n have_v do_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n to_o reinforce_v this_o argument_n let_v any_o man_n that_o will_v become_v a_o advocate_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v that_o any_o people_n differ_v and_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o like_a idolatry_n with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v comply_v as_o aforemention_v and_o we_o will_v reject_v this_o argument_n but_o if_o this_o character_n do_v more_o fit_o nay_o direct_o meet_v in_o papal_a rome_n our_o argument_n be_v good_a and_o unanswerable_a viii_o another_o scripture_n mark_n and_o character_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v this_o i._n e._n she_o do_v not_o only_o cause_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o but_o she_o have_v intoxicate_v the_o mind_n
to_o lie_v swear_v and_o for-swear_a to_o kill_v slay_n and_o murder_n such_o they_o call_v heretic_n though_o never_o so_o godly_a if_o it_o be_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o holy_a church_n with_o a_o thousand_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n which_o the_o people_n do_v believe_v and_o dare_v not_o disow_v upon_o their_o salvation_n but_o bold_o adventure_v to_o engage_v at_o all_o opportunity_n to_o fight_n and_o make_v war_n burn_v city_n lay_v waste_a country_n and_o kingdom_n and_o destroy_v by_o massacre_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o murder_v way_n all_o rank_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n who_o oppose_v the_o horrid_a principle_n of_o this_o vile_a church_n and_o curse_a practice_n of_o these_o son_n of_o belial_n nay_o they_o will_v go_v bold_o to_o their_o own_o death_n when_o convict_v and_o just_o condemn_v for_o such_o like_a villainy_n and_o deny_v to_o day_n what_o they_o be_v convict_v of_o yesterday_o and_o though_o never_o so_o notorious_o guilty_a yet_o will_v take_v it_o upon_o their_o death_n they_o be_v as_o innocent_a as_o the_o child_n unborn_a what_o can_v this_o be_v though_o they_o drink_v it_o down_o as_o sweet_a wine_n but_o a_o infusion_n of_o the_o rank_a and_o most_o deadly_a poison_n that_o the_o low_a cellar_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n can_v afford_v the_o very_a wine_n of_o the_o whore_n fornication_n and_o the_o most_o dangerous_a intoxication_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v attend_v with_o this_o aggravation_n i._n e._n the_o best_a medicine_n of_o the_o wise_a physician_n will_v not_o recover_v they_o for_o babylon_n have_v make_v the_o multitude_n drink_v with_o this_o sort_n of_o poison_a wine_n how_o rare_a be_v it_o to_o have_v any_o to_o come_v to_o themselves_o or_o to_o their_o right_a mind_n again_o and_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o head_n take_v this_o argument_n arg._n if_o no_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v make_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o common_a people_n or_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n drink_v i._n e._n corrupt_v and_o intoxicate_v their_o mind_n with_o wicked_a lie_n falsehood_n and_o detestable_a doctrine_n as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v then_o rome_n papal_n etc._n etc._n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o no_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v make_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n drink_v i._n e._n corrupt_v and_o intoxicate_v their_o mind_n by_o wicked_a lie_n falsehood_n and_o detestable_a doctrine_n such_o as_o before_o mention_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n ix_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet-coloured_a beast_n and_o this_o beast_n be_v full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n rev._n 17._o 3._o so_o that_o it_o appear_v the_o woman_n and_o the_o beast_n be_v distinct_a by_o the_o woman_n be_v mean_v the_o false_a church_n by_o the_o beast_n be_v mean_v the_o secular_a power_n or_o civil_a state_n or_o the_o antichrist_n or_o that_o government_n that_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o of_o the_o seven_o who_o assume_v both_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n by_o who_o the_o whore_n false_a church_n and_o worship_n be_v support_v that_o the_o beast_n and_o whore_n be_v distinct_a be_v evident_a 1._o from_o other_o prophecy_n relate_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n 2._o from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n 3._o from_o argument_n ground_v on_o reason_n 4._o from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o whore_n herself_o 1._o from_o the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o scripture_n describe_v the_o same_o state_n of_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n dan_o 2._o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o image_n be_v partly_o iron_n and_o partly_o clay_n two_o state_n that_o be_v real_o distinct_a that_o can_v never_o so_o in_o corporate_a as_o to_o become_v one_o 2._o from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet-coloured_n beast_n full_a of_o the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n the_o colour_n of_o the_o royal_a and_o imperial_a vestment_n as_o the_o angel_n declare_v they_o distinct_a so_o the_o apostle_n see_v they_o distinct_a 3._o they_o appear_v to_o be_v distinct_a from_o argument_n ground_v upon_o reason_n for_o 1._o the_o beast_n be_v in_o the_o masculine_a gender_n the_o whore_n in_o the_o feminine_a gender_n 2._o because_o the_o whore_n be_v 16._o say_v to_o ride_v upon_o the_o beast_n the_o one_o carry_v the_o other_o 3._o the_o horn_n be_v of_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v say_v shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n if_o they_o be_v not_o distinct_a the_o whore_n must_v hate_v herself_o and_o eat_v she_o own_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v nonsensical_a 4._o the_o beast_n shall_v abide_v though_o in_o captivity_n after_o the_o whore_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o destroy_v 4._o from_o the_o plain_a confession_n of_o the_o whore_n herself_o they_o be_v distinct_a who_o say_v i_o sit_v a_o queen_n i_o be_o no_o widow_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la she_o have_v a_o head_n or_o husband_n which_o be_v the_o vile_a person_n little_a horn_n and_o ecclesiastical_a beast_n or_o that_o man_n of_o sin_n st._n paul_n declare_v shall_v rise_v after_o the_o than_o present_a romish_a power_n which_o do_v let_v be_v take_v away_o which_o the_o primitive_a father_n as_o tertullian_n cyprian_n jerome_n and_o other_o understand_v to_o be_v the_o imperial_a power_n in_o its_o pure_a civil_a iron_n or_o unmixt-state_n or_o leg_n of_o the_o image_n dan._n 2._o paral._n rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o draw_v into_o idolatry_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n great_a man_n abuse_v god_n his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o bless_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o she_o have_v make_v the_o low_a and_o rude_a sort_n of_o the_o people_n drink_v too_o as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n she_o think_v she_o may_v do_v any_o thing_n have_v a_o dispensation_n from_o heaven_n as_o she_o pretend_v which_o the_o pope_n keep_v the_o key_n of_o fear_v no_o power_n on_o earth_n and_o now_o that_o she_o have_v the_o secular_a power_n to_o support_v she_o upon_o which_o she_o sit_v or_o ride_v in_o great_a pomp_n be_v evident_a and_o that_o they_o be_v real_o distinct_a for_o what_o of_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v still_o leave_v at_o rome_n be_v under_o the_o conduct_n and_o management_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o civil_a administration_n of_o justice_n or_o exercise_n of_o law_n but_o what_o be_v authorize_v and_o allow_v by_o the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a state_n to_o make_v this_o further_a evident_a the_o pope_n do_v not_o only_o exercise_v a_o power_n of_o appoint_v secular_o at_o rome_n and_o near_o to_o it_o but_o he_o claim_v the_o like_a supremacy_n abroad_o in_o other_o kingdom_n if_o the_o secular_a prince_n fall_v off_o from_o he_o or_o will_v not_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o and_o own_v he_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o will_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v they_o and_o take_v away_o their_o crown●_n and_o sceptre_n from_o they_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o temporal_a prince_n as_o well_o as_o a_o ecclesiastical_a bishop_n i._n e._n make_v law_n exact_v tribute_n raise_v soldier_n and_o act_n a_o monarch_n be_v notorious_o know_v which_o fair_o afford_v he_o the_o title_n of_o beast_n that_o his_o royal_a and_o scarlet_a robe_n the_o chair_n he_o sit_v in_o to_o his_o very_a hose_n and_o shoe_n with_o the_o vestment_n of_o his_o cardinal_n be_v scarlet_a so_o that_o you_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o here_o you_o have_v the_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n beside_o no_o man_n can_v reasonable_o doubt_v that_o what_o the_o civil_a power_n claim_v the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n exercise_n and_o that_o this_o princely_a pope_n be_v in_o the_o masculine_a and_o this_o harlot_n or_o false_a church_n in_o the_o feminine_a gender_n be_v own_v by_o all_o party_n that_o the_o church_n state_n do_v sit_v upon_o ride_v and_o govern_v the_o secular_a at_o rome_n italy_n and_o all_o its_o territory_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n own_v that_o she_o be_v no_o widow_n but_o have_v a_o head_n call_v his_o holiness_n or_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o we_o can_v find_v they_o upon_o any_o file_n of_o record_n of_o controversy_n there_o remain_v therefore_o no_o more_o to_o be_v do_v here_o since_o this_o black_a character_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n do_v so_o well_o meet_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n arg._n if_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a state_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o do_v so_o apparent_o sit_v upon_o command_n and_o govern_v the_o beast_n
will_v find_v she_o outdo_v all_o community_n in_o the_o world._n arg._n if_o no_o people_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v such_o riches_n splendour_n outward_a pomp_n and_o bravery_n in_o the_o maintenance_n and_o management_n of_o their_o worship_n as_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o gaudy_a harlot_n or_o mystery_n babylon_n but_o there_o be_v no_o people_n or_o church_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v such_o riches_n splendour_n outward_a pomp_n and_o bravery_n in_o the_o maintenance_n and_o management_n of_o their_o religious_a worship_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n xii_o as_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v thus_o adorn_v with_o outward_a pomp_n and_o external_a riches_n and_o glory_n so_o likewise_o another_o mark_n or_o character_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v lay_v down_o of_o she_o be_v this_o i._n e._n upon_o her_o forehead_n a_o name_n be_v write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n mother_n of_o harlot_n may_v refer_v in_o part_n to_o external_a whoredom_n but_o chief_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n i._n e._n she_o breed_v and_o bring_v forth_o spiritual_a harlot_n viz._n unclean_a community_n parallel_n that_o this_o character_n meet_v direct_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v very_o clear_a upon_o her_o forehead_n denote_v as_o our_o late_a worthy_a annotator_n observe_v the_o open_a guilt_n ●nd_v impudence_n of_o this_o spiritual_a harlot_n mystery_n babylon_n that_o be_v there_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o what_o follow_v in_o her_o name_n the_o great_a not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o chaldean_a babylon_n but_o of_o a_o city_n or_o policy_n under_o the_o gospel_n as_o cap._n 11._o 8._o she_o be_v call_v spiritual_a sodom_n and_o egypt_n so_o in_o a_o spiritual_a or_o mystical_a sense_n she_o be_v call_v babylon_n because_o a_o city_n like_a to_o babylon_n for_o idolatry_n and_o persecution_n of_o god_n israel_n not_o a_o mere_a harlot_n but_o one_o that_o breed_n up_o harlot_n and_o nourish_v idolatry_n communicate_v it_o to_o other_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a name_n of_o rome_n instead_o of_o mother_n church_n 1._o here_o be_v a_o name_n write_v in_o capital_a letter_n and_o write_v upon_o her_o forehead_n so_o as_o to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o i._n e._n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o hide_v o●_n cover_v her_o whoredom_n or_o to_o defend_v or_o deliver_v herself_o from_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v and_o read_v by_o all_o enlighten_v christian_n and_o professor_n it_o will_v not_o not_o so_o much_o concern_v we_o for_o if_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v not_o write_v for_o the_o christian_a world_n it_o leave_v we_o at_o a_o uncertainty_n nor_o be_v we_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o make_v a_o judgement_n in_o this_o great_a case_n who_o this_o great_a who●●_n be_v 2._o nay_o and_o if_o this_o babylon_n be_v a_o small_a and_o private_a people_n and_o community_n of_o christian_n or_o such_o who_o pretend_v themselves_o so_o to_o be_v she_o can_v not_o be_v call_v great_a babylon_n and_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o rome_n be_v a_o great_a people_n a_o great_a whore_n or_o false_a church_n and_o her_o detestable_a spiritual_a adultery_n appear_v obvious_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n nay_o her_o image_n and_o idolatry_n cause_v both_o jew_n and_o turk_n the_o more_o to_o hate_v and_o abhor_v that_o christian_a religion_n which_o she_o profess_v as_o it_o have_v be_v manifest_o make_v know_v by_o many_o worthy_a writer_n 3._o and_o for_o mystery_n see_v what_o we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o treatise_n wherein_o be_v open_v that_o strange_a mystery_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v it_o not_o this_o mystery_n babylon_n that_o say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o pretend_v to_o visibility_n as_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a evidence_n thereof_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v positive_o say_v that_o the_o true_a woman_n or_o church_n of_o god_n be_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 1260_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n rev._n 12._o where_o she_o be_v hide_v all_o that_o time_n or_o abode_n in_o a_o obscure_a condition_n be_v it_o not_o a_o riddle_n and_o confuse_a mystery_n that_o she_o be_v queen_n regent_n ride_v upon_o the_o beast_n in_o state_n all_o along_o and_o yet_o that_o very_o poor_a and_o distress_a woman_n that_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o abide_v there_o in_o a_o suffer_a condition_n all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n reign_v be_v not_o this_o a_o riddle_n and_o strange_a mystery_n that_o one_o pretend_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o mother_n of_o peace_n purity_n and_o charity_n and_o yet_o notorious_o know_v to_o be_v the_o breeder_n bringer_n forth_o and_o cherisher_n of_o division_n falshood_n most_o bloody_a butchery_n and_o barbarous_a cruelty_n and_o murder_n 4._o she_o be_v call_v babylon_n or_o babel_n i._n e._n confusion_n and_o do_v not_o this_o agree_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v she_o not_o open_o show_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o absolute_a antitype_n of_o old_a babel_n 1._o in_o devise_v and_o set_v up_o another_o way_n to_o heaven_n than_o what_o god_n have_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v viz._n a_o tower_n of_o their_o own_o raise_n not_o by_o christ_n alone_o but_o by_o the_o demerit_n of_o their_o own_o good_a work_n and_o you_o know_v what_o some_o of_o those_o work_n be_v that_o she_o call_v meritorious_a which_o be_v to_o destroy_v and_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o such_o she_o call_v heretic_n i._n e._n godly_a protestant_n this_o be_v the_o way_n she_o ha●_n find_v out_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o her_o dear_a child_n 2._o in_o pluck_v up_o or_o endeavour_v to_o raze_v out_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n as_o old_a caldea●_n babylon_n do_v and_o set_v up_o idolatry_n in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v well_o be_v call_v babylon_n in_o respect_n of_o her_o doctrine_n principle_n and_o modes_n of_o worship_n which_o i●_n such_o a_o jumble_z strange_a mixture_n and_o heap_v o●_n human_a invention_n that_o may_v well_o go_v fo●_n confusion_n itself_o see_v our_o three_o mark_n in_o her_o order_n diversity_n and_o long_o muster_v roll_n of_o officer_n that_o be_v so_o numerous_a as_o well_o as_o unscriptural_a that_o if_o mixture_n and_o confusion_n be_v ●ny_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o pretend_a church_n where_o you_o have_v pope_n cardinal_n priest_n and_o archpriest_n bishop_n lord_n bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n dean_n and_o archdeacon_n suffragans_fw-la patriarch_n abbot_n friar_n monk_n nun_n seminary_n jesuit_n follower_n of_o st._n francis_n jansenius_n augustine_n capuchin_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o not_o this_o romish_a har●ot_n have_v receive_v some_o of_o her_o jolly_a church_n prelate_n with_o their_o exorbitant_a power_n from_o her_o heathenish_a predecessor_n romu●us_n 1._o and_o numa_n pompilius_n who_o make_v flamen_n arch-flamin_n and_o a_o pon●ifex_fw-la maxim●s_fw-la to_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o god_n and_o some_o of_o her_o ceremony_n she_o have_v take_v from_o other_o infidel_n as_o the_o shave_n of_o priest_n crown_n like_o the_o priest_n of_o isis_n and_o serapis_n in_o egypt_n nay_o for_o confusion_n and_o filthy_a abomination_n she_o have_v outdo_v heathen_a rome_n for_o numa_n the_o king_n of_o the_o antique_a roman_n forbid_v they_o to_o think_v that_o the_o image_n of_o numa_n god_n have_v the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n or_o form_n of_o other_o live_a creature_n yet_o this_o mother_n of_o idolatry_n allow_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n in_o form_n of_o a_o old_a man_n and_o holy_a ghost_n in_o form_n of_o a_o dove_n though_o the_o holy_a prophet_n inveigle_v 18._o against_o this_o detestable_a vanity_n demand_v to_o who_o will_v you_o liken_v god_n or_o what_o similitude_n will_v you_o set_v up_o unto_o he_o yet_o this_o whorish_a church_n to_o these_o teacher_n of_o lie_n as_o one_o observe_v and_o counterfeit_v of_o god_n to_o the_o shame_n of_o christian_n adore_v these_o image_n or_o rather_o the_o devil_n in_o they_o who_o worship_n it_o be_v and_o so_o fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v write_v of_o she_o rev._n 9_o 20._o that_o man_n will_v not_o repent_v of_o the_o work_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o devil_n and_o idol_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o br●s●_n and_o of_o stone_n and_o of_o wood_n which_o neither_o can_v see_v neither_o ●ear_n nor_o go_v as_o she_o appear_v in_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o be_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o as_o
worthy_a mr._n ainsworth_n observe_v in_o her_o divine_a service_n she_o have_v babel_n very_a language_n a_o unknown_a tongue_n so_o be_v it_o a_o idol_n whole_o make_v as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v according_a to_o her_o own_o understanding_n and_o be_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o craftsman_n the_o prelate_n and_o pope_n the_o lover_n of_o this_o great_a whore_n who_o have_v patch_v together_o in_o their_o several_a age_n the_o limb_n of_o this_o deform_a monster_n the_o mass_n and_o canon_n thereof_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o litany_n and_o collect_v anthem_n and_o respond_v and_o in_o this_o liturgy_n god_n and_o his_o angel_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n and_o confessor_n with_o he_o saint_n and_o she_o saint_n and_o some_o that_o have_v satan_n sanctity_n be_v wrap_v up_o together_o with_o a_o stage-play_a like_o worship_n with_o musical_a instrument_n to_o make_v they_o merry_a as_o nabuchadnezzar_n with_o melody_n celebrate_v the_o dedication_n of_o his_o golden_a image_n which_o portal_n and_o missal_n these_o artisan_n have_v frame_v exceed_v all_o superstition_n abomination_n and_o confession_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o mere_a device_n and_o forgery_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n provoke_v god_n to_o jealousy_n and_o wrath_n which_o sudden_o she_o must_v partake_v of_o without_o mixture_n 4._o mother_n of_o harlot_n have_v not_o papal_a rome_n this_o very_a character_n upon_o her_o forehead_n it_o meet_v in_o none_o as_o in_o she_o all_o protestant_n of_o what_o denomination_n soever_o utter_o disallow_v of_o fornication_n whoredom_n and_o adultery_n in_o person_n of_o any_o rank_n whatsoever_o maintain_v constant_o that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o all_o whereas_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v give_v public_a toleration_n to_o abominable_a whoredom_n and_o the_o most_o shameless_a and_o unatural_a bestiality_n as_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o epithet_n mother_n of_o harlot_n ●ay_v more_o proper_o refer_v to_o spiritual_a adultery_n ●nd_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o mystical_a mo●her_n be_v very_o plain_a and_o evident_a for_o do_v not_o all_o her_o child_n own_o she_o to_o be_v the_o mother_n church_n ●nd_v therefore_o 1._o protestant_n be_v exhort_v to_o return_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o their_o mother_n 2._o all_o pollute_v and_o national_a church_n in_o the_o european_a kingdom_n spring_v from_o she_o as_o the_o church_n of_o france_n spain_n portugal_n etc._n etc._n and_o do_v call_v her_o mother_n 3._o all_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n be_v breed_v and_o bring_v forth_o by_o she_o she_o be_v certain_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o these_o curse_a title_n and_o error_n follow_v viz._n universal_a supreme_a infallible_a head_n holy_a father_n the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n in_o the_o abstract_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n unerring_a church_n priestly_a absolution_n sell_v pardon_n indulgence_n dispensation_n adore_v the_o crucifix_n worship_v of_o image_n anoint_v and_o sprinkle_v of_o holy-water_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o mass_n nay_o and_o the_o adore_v the_o devil_n own_o engine_n i._n e._n the_o cross_n or_o gibbet_n whereon_o the_o devil_n emissary_n kill_v or_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o glory_n for_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v do_v away_o by_o ●_o curse_a death_n upon_o a_o tree_n o●_n 13._o which_o whosoever_o be_v hang_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o he_o this_o death_n the_o innocent_a lamb_n jesus_n christ_n suffer_v f●●_n our_o sake_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o wicked_a sinne●_n pilate_n and_o the_o jew_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o use_v all_o exquisite_a torment_n to_o mak●_n his_o death_n miserable_a crown_v he_o wi●●_n thorn_n pierce_v his_o hand_n foot_n and_o side_n with_o nail_n and_o a_o spear_n hang_v he_o on_o the_o tree_n until_o he_o die_v and_o this_o pretend_a tree_n or_o cross_n thorn_n and_o nail_n with_o other_o counterfeit_n of_o they_o this_o mother_n of_o harlot_n teach_v her_o child_n to_o adore_v and_o honour_n with_o as_o good_a ground_n and_o devotion_n as_o one_o observe_v as_o the_o ophites_n or_o serpentory_n be_v say_v to_o honour_v the_o serpent_n the_o devil_n instrument_n for_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v take_v notice_n that_o rome_n be_v the_o city_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v this_o mother_n of_o harlot_n do_v proclaim_v that_o the_o cross_n be_v that_o altar_n whereon_o the_o great_a sacrifice_n christ_n be_v offer_v whereas_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n who_o blood_n be_v bring_v to_o make_v reconciliation_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n be_v burn_v without_o the_o host_n or_o camp_n of_o israel_n and_o not_o on_o the_o altar_n which_o stand_v before_o the_o door_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n according_a to_o which_o figure_n jesus_n also_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n suffer_v without_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v a_o reproach_n yet_o will_v these_o god-eater_n and_o crucifier_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n make_v the_o curse_a cross_n to_o be_v the_o altar_n most_o holy_a and_o so_o great_a than_o christ_n the_o sacrifice_n as_o be_v that_o which_o sanctify_v he_o for_o the_o al●ar_v sanctify_v the_o offering_n and_o hereupon_o they_o call_v the_o cross_n bless_v and_o ascribe_v unto_o it_o worthiness_n to_o bear_v the_o talon_n of_o the_o world_n they_o account_v it_o among_o the_o most_o precious_a relic_n and_o not_o only_o the_o whole_a but_o every_o piece_n thereof_o they_o adore_v it_o salute_v it_o pray_v unto_o it_o and_o trust_v therein_o for_o salvation_n cry_v hail_o o_o cross_n our_o only_a hope_n increase_v thou_o to_o the_o godly_a righteousness_n and_o unto_o sinner_n give_v pardon_n save_v thou_o the_o company_n gather_v together_o in_o thy_o praise_n yea_o the_o very_a sign_n of_o this_o idol_n make_v in_o the_o air_n upon_o the_o forehead_n or_o over_o any_o thing_n be_v sacred_a and_o venerable_a and_o have_v force_n to_o drive_v away_o devil_n and_o do_v many_o like_a feat_n wherefore_o this_o abomination_n have_v prevail_v above_o other_o and_o be_v like_o beel●ebub_n prince_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o badge_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o character_n of_o mystery_n babylon_n imprint_v in_o church_n chapel_n altar_n house_n and_o high_a way_n in_o book_n write_n in_o prayer_n sacrament_n in_o garment_n body_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n both_o quick_a and_o dead_a nay_o nothing_o be_v well_o hallow_a without_o it_o no_o sacrament_n perfect_a without_o it_o and_o this_o great_a honour_n have_v the_o cross_n because_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n kill_v or_o crucify_a our_o saviour_n upon_o it_o so_o that_o a_o marvel_v it_o be_v how_o judas_n lip_n escape_v honour_n see_v he_o also_o be_v satan_n instrument_n to_o betray_v christ_n with_o a_o kiss_n wherefore_o this_o spiritual_a egypt_n pseudo_fw-la catholic_n church_n deserve_v more_o to_o 15._o be_v brand_v by_o some_o satirist_n for_o worship_v monster_n than_o the_o first_o egypt_n who_o less_o impiety_n a_o heathen_a poet_n do_v deride_v 4._o as_o she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o detestable_a error_n etc._n etc._n so_o also_o be_v she_o mother_n of_o all_o personal_a vice_n and_o fleshly_a abomination_n as_o horrid_a oath_n and_o blasphemy_n most_o astonish_a perjury_n and_o subtle_a equivocation_n hypocrisy_n uncleanness_n lie_v subornation_n secret_a poison_n stab_v throat-cutings_a adultery_n covenant-breaking_a and_o what_o not_o be_v these_o thing_n allow_v among_o protestant_n no_o certain_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o only_o allow_v by_o this_o whore_n but_o esteem_v meritorious_a if_o it_o be_v do_v for_o the_o good_a and_o promotion_n of_o holy_a church_n and_o for_o these_o thing_n may_v she_o not_o right_o be_v call_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o this_o argument_n argu._n if_o this_o name_n mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o all_o these_o respect_n we_o have_v note_v do_v not_o so_o full_o and_o fit_o agree_v to_o any_o people_n as_o they_o do_v to_o rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o rome_n papal_n etc._n etc._n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o this_o name_n mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o all_o these_o respect_n note_v do_v not_o agree_v so_o fit_o and_o full_o to_o any_o people_n in_o the_o world_n as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mystery_n
will_v they_o set_v up_o and_o who_o she_o will_v they_o pull_v down_o when_o she_o will_v they_o raise_v arm_n and_o when_o she_o will_v they_o lay_v they_o down_o again_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v such_o power_n over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n th●●_n the_o power_n and_o will_n of_o prince_n have_v be_v control_v and_o overrule_v when_o in_o any_o considerable_a case_n they_o have_v go_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o they_o have_v sometime_o make_v th●●_n do_v penance_n resign_v up_o their_o crown_n and_o receive_v they_o again_o as_o a_o act_n of_o kindness_n that_o he_o set_v they_o upon_o their_o head_n with_o his_o foot_n such_o be_v the_o pride_n and_o grandeur_n of_o st._n peter_n chair_n see_v our_o first_o chapter_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o people_n woman_n or_o church_n that_o above_o all_o other_o in_o the_o world_n have_v reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n than_o rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o people_n woman_n or_o church_n that_o reign_v and_o have_v reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n ergo_fw-la rome_n papal_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n mystery_n babylon_n chap._n iii_o prove_v that_o literal_a babylon_n in_o chaldea_n be_v a_o type_n or_o figure_n of_o rome_n papal_n or_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o in_o many_o particular_n we_o have_v show_v and_o clear_o evince_v by_o a_o induction_n of_o fifteen_o particular_n that_o rome_n papal_n be_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n she_o have_v all_o the_o mark_n or_o character_n direct_o meet_v in_o she_o that_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v of_o that_o great_a whore_n we_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n brief_o consider_v how_o the_o act_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v most_o fit_o and_o full_o comport_v with_o other_o type_n and_o prophecy_n of_o she_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o first_o with_o literal_a or_o chaldean_a babylon_n from_o whence_o i_o find_v most_o writer_n conclude_v she_o have_v the_o name_n babylon_n give_v to_o she_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o growth_n act_n and_o deed_n of_o that_o old_a babylonian_a monarchy_n which_o we_o shall_v now_o open_a and_o run_v the_o parallel_n in_o divers_a particular_n as_o follow_v i._o literal_a babylon_n have_v a_o great_a head_n or_o king_n ever_o she_o call_v a_o head_n of_o gold_n also_o lucifer_n or_o son_n of_o the_o morning_n so_o likewise_o rome_n papal_n have_v a_o great_a head_n or_o king_n over_o she_o call_v the_o universal_a bishop_n who_o power_n be_v magnify_v above_o the_o power_n of_o emperor_n and_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n ii_o literal_a babylon_n have_v dominion_n over_o many_o country_n or_o province_n in_o like_a manner_n rome_n papal_n have_v have_v dominion_n over_o many_o country_n or_o kingdom_n no_o less_o than_o the_o territory_n or_o jurisdiction_n of_o ten_o considerable_a kingdom_n call_v ten_o horn_n ●_o we_o have_v show_v iii_o chaldean_a or_o literal_a babylon_n fall_v under_o a_o fourfold_a circumstance_n in_o respect_n of_o her_o supreme_a head_n viz._n nabuchadnezzar_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v when_o in_o great_a pride_n he_o insult_o say_v be_v not_o this_o great_a babylon_n that_o i_o have_v build_v by_o the_o might_n of_o my_o power_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o majesty_n 2._o he_o be_v not_o when_o by_o the_o watcher_n and_o the_o holy_a one_o he_o be_v toss_v from_o his_o throne_n and_o make_v to_o eat_v grass_n with_o ox_n till_o seven_o time_n pass_v over_o he_o 3._o yet_o he_o be_v when_o his_o reason_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o noble_n and_o glory_n return_v to_o he_o again_o 4._o he_o go_v off_o final_o when_o god_n bring_v the_o mede_n and_o persian_n against_o his_o successor_n into_o who_o hand_n the_o kingdom_n be_v translate_v rome_n or_o mystery_n babylon_n be_v foretell_v by_o the_o angel_n to_o fall_v under_o a_o fourfold_a circumstance_n also_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v say_v to_o carry_v the_o whore_n and_o make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o beast_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v be_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v and_o shall_v go_v into_o perdition_n rev._n 17._o 8._o 1._o he_o be_v of_o old_a in_o his_o pagan_a state_n triumph_v in_o great_a glory_n and_o grandeur_n but_o receive_v a_o wound_n yea_o a_o deadly_a wound_n in_o one_o of_o his_o head_n viz._n in_o his_o six_o head_n which_o be_v the_o pagan_a power_n in_o constantine_n time_n and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o the_o christian_a emperor_n have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_a monarch_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v our_o late_a annotator_n on_o the_o 13_o chap._n of_o rev._n v._n 3._o and_o chap._n 17._o 8._o it_o must_v say_v he_o be_v the_o six_o head_n viz._n the_o pagan_a emperor_n who_o have_v that_o mortal_a wound_n and_o that_o wound_n be_v the_o conquer_a the_o pagan_a emperor_n and_o the_o abolish_n of_o paganism_n and_o idolatry_n and_o put_v a_o end_n or_o stop_v to_o persecution_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o seven_o government_n viz._n the_o christian_a emperor_n he_o yet_o be_v i._n e._n his_o wound_n be_v heal_v by_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o eight_o government_n which_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o who_o appear_v in_o a_o new_a dress_n viz._n a_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb_n but_o speak_v like_o a_o dragon_n which_o be_v the_o antichristian_a power_n or_o papal_a rome_n and_o more_o particular_o the_o pope_n time_n the_o best_a opener_n of_o these_o great_a mystery_n have_v full_o discover_v these_o thing_n to_o 〈◊〉_d 4._o he_o shall_v go_v into_o perdition_n i._n e._n be_v utter_o destroy_v by_o the_o bright_a appearance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o be_v cast_v at_o last_o into_o the_o botomless_a pit_n after_o the_o 42_o month_n be_v expire_v so_o that_o in_o these_o four_o respect_n chaldean_a babylon_n it_o appear_v be_v a_o lively_a type_n or_o figure_n of_o papal_n rome_n who_o from_o hence_o also_o show_v herself_o to_o be_v mystery_n babylon_n iv._o the_o chaldean_a kingdom_n or_o literal_a babylon_n invade_v judea_n besiege_a and_o take_v jerusalem_n and_o trample_v it_o under_o foot_n etc._n etc._n even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o last_o beast_n the_o pope_n and_o papal_a power_n have_v invade_v the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n or_o true_a gospel_n church_n take_v away_o all_o her_o sacred_a right_n law_n and_o privilege_n and_o not_o only_a besiege_a she_o close_o block_v she_o up_o but_o trample_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n for_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n rev._n 11._o ●_o v._o chaldean_a or_o literal_a babylon_n be_v a_o mo●_n lofty_a proud_a and_o imperious_a people_n call_v the_o lady_n of_o kingdom_n and_o the_o glory_n and_o beauty_n ●_o excellency_n for_o which_o god_n do_v severe_o threaten_v she_o isa._n 13._o 19_o behold_v i_o be_o against_o thou_o o_o thou_o most_o proud_a say_v ●_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n etc._n etc._n isa._n 50._o 31._o so_o in_o like_a manner_n rome_n who_o be_v myster_n babylon_n notwithstanding_o her_o horrid_a crime_n and_o most_o amaze_a wickedness_n be_v a_o u●●_n proud_a and_o imperious_a people_n exceed_v all_o ●_o the_o christian_a world_n say_v in_o her_o heart_n sit_v a_o queen_n be_o no_o widow_n shall_v see_v no_o sorrow_n for_o which_o haughtiness_n and_o pride_n the_o lord_n will_v sudden_o remember_v she_o with_o judgement_n and_o sore_a severity_n he_o be_v now_o rise_v up_o to_o make_v inquisition_n for_o blood_n and_o to_o avenge_v upon_o she_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o zion_n rev._n 18._o 7._o how_o much_o she_o have_v glorify_v herself_o and_o live_v delicious_o so_o much_o torment_v and_o sorrow_n give_v she_o vi_o chaldean_a or_o literal_a babylon_n set_v up_o image_n and_o have_v idol_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n wood_n and_o stone_n to_o which_o they_o bow_v and_o worship_v which_o be_v also_o representation_n of_o the_o god_n and_o saint_n who_o they_o adore_v to_o wit_n of_o bel_n which_o be_v jupiter_n and_o nebo_n and_o succoth_n berioth_v and_o the_o like_a and_o such_o who_o will_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o her_o image_n she_o threaten_v to_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n into_o the_o burn_a fiery_a furnace_n jer._n 5._o 30._o jer._n 10._o 3_o 9_o isa._n 46._o 1._o dan._n 3._o 6._o rome_n in_o this_o show_v herself_o to_o be_v her_o antitype_n very_o plain_o for_o have_v she_o not_o ordain_v to_o her self_o temple_n image_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n nay_o and_o not_o only_o these_o but_o the_o
levy_v soldier_n by_o which_o mean_n he_o strike_v in_o wit●_n party_n and_o encroach_v upon_o italy_n and_o the_o part_n adjacent_a 2._o this_o power_n arise_v upon_o the_o weaken_n and_o division_n of_o the_o old_a state_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n or_o kingdom_n be_v call_v a_o little_a horn_n because_o true_o so_o at_o its_o first_o beginning_n dan._n 7._o 8._o and_o behold_v there_o come_v up_o among_o they_o another_o little_a horn_n etc._n etc._n the_o pap●●_n power_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o this_o division_n be_v but_o low_a and_o small_a be_v confine_v to_o his_o episcopal_a power_n over_o the_o church_n till_o by_o his_o art_n he_o have_v get_v up_o gradual_o to_o the_o regal_a seat_n and_o power_n of_o the_o temporal_a sword_n which_o he_o manage_v with_o so_o much_o craft_n and_o policy_n that_o afterward_o he_o enlarge_v his_o dominion_n but_o be_v very_o rightful_o in_o his_o infancy_n style_v a_o little_a prince_n power_n or_o horn_n arise_v up_o among_o or_o after_o the_o rest_n which_o begin_v present_o after_o the_o death_n of_o julian_n about_o the_o year_n 365_o in_o which_o time_n be_v a_o most_o fearful_a earthquake_n the_o like_a never_o know_v before_o betoken_v the_o decay_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n in_o its_o civil_a state_n or_o power_n by_o a_o division_n or_o fall_v of_o nation_n who_o set_v themselves_o against_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n and_o harassed_a waste_v and_o destroy_v the_o province_n thereof_o for_o near_o forty_o five_o year_n together_o see_v mede_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 659._o 3._o this_o little_a horn_n after_o his_o rise_n to_o temporal_a power_n pluck_v up_o three_o of_o the_o ten_o horn_n by_o the_o root_n dan._n 7._o 8._o before_o who_o there_o be_v three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n the_o papal_a rome_n have_v gain_v the_o temporal_a sword_n though_o but_o a_o little_a horn_n at_o his_o beginning_n do_v practice_n and_o prosper_v so_o that_o betwixt_o the_o year_n 365_o and_o the_o year_n 456_o or_o soon_o after_o when_o rome_n be_v sack_v by_o gensericus_fw-la he_o gain_v such_o enlargment_n that_o he_o come_v to_o possess_v about_o three_o part_n of_o ten_o of_o the_o former_a or_o old_a roman_a dominion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n or_o measure_n of_o the_o compass_n as_o we_o find_v in_o mr._n mede_n lib._n 3._o p._n 658._o and_o famous_a du_n moulin_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la upon_o which_o three_o character_n of_o the_o little_a horn_n we_o frame_v this_o short_a argument_n if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rise_v to_o temporal_a power_n upon_o the_o weaken_n of_o caesarean_a dominion_n which_o before_o do_v hinder_v he_o in_o his_o aspire_a usurpation_n be_v but_o little_a in_o his_o first_o rise_n and_o appearance_n do_v enlarge_v and_o grow_v to_o a_o possession_n of_o power_n about_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o old_a roman_a dominion_n then_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o little_a horn_n the_o wicked_a power_n and_o vile_a person_n s●…_n forth_o by_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a 4._o this_o little_a horn_n have_v eye_n like_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n etc._n etc._n the_o pope_n of_o rom●_n have_v eye_n like_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n i._n e._n the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o humane_a look_n but_o a_o heart_n like_o the_o dragon_n out_o of_o which_o foul_a mouth_n he_o utter_v presumptuous_a thing_n his_o predecesson_n have_v eye_n like_o a_o leopard_n a_o bear_n a_o lion_n 〈…〉_z dragon_n but_o his_o high_a eye_n like_o a_o man_n 〈…〉_z which_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v note●_n 1._o he_o look_v high_a 2._o see_v further_o and_o 3._o be_v more_o entice_a than_o those_o th●…_n go_v before_o he_o 1._o he_o look_v high_a that_o be_v make_v pretence_n of_o pretty_a and_o desig●…_n for_o heaven_n 2._o see_v further_o that_o de_fw-fr ceit_n flattery_n and_o policy_n will_v do_v more_o than_o strength_n 3._o be_v more_o entice_a to_o king_n and_o people_n than_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o leopard_n lion_n or_o dragon_n or_o the_o former_a power_n in_o their_o heathenish_a state._n 5._o this_o little_a horn_n have_v a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a or_o presumptuous_a thing_n above_o the_o rate_n of_o ordinary_a man_n dan._n 7._o 8._o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a or_o presumptuous_a thing_n above_o the_o ordinary_a rate_n of_o man_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o many_o respect_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v give_v you_o but_o a_o few_o instance_n out_o of_o many_o 1._o that_o he_o be_v he_o say_v the_o high_a deputy_n of_o god_n above_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n 2._o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a and_o can_v err_v which_o be_v a_o incommunicable_a attribute_n of_o the_o most_o high_a 3._o that_o he_o be_v universal_a head_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 4._o he_o assume_v the_o attribute_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o holy_a father_n such_o a_o oracle_n that_o have_v right_a or_o power_n to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o world_n to_o which_o all_o aught_o ●o_o subscribe_v and_o yield_v obedience_n and_o none_o ●…ught_v to_o dispute_v great_a and_o more_o lofty_o ●an_v no_o man_n speak_v unless_o he_o will_v say_v i_o be_o ●he_n supreme_a be_v and_o there_o be_v no_o god_n in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n above_o myself_o which_o will_v ●e_v so_o high_o ridiculous_a that_o every_o idiot_n will_v be_v able_a to_o detect_v it_o 6._o the_o little_a horn_n have_v his_o look_n more_o stout_a than_o his_o fellow_n dan._n 7._o 20._o who_o look_v be_v ●ore_o stout_a etc._n etc._n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v look_n more_o stout_a than_o the_o horn_n that_o have_v be_v contemporary_a with_o he_o which_o appear_v in_o three_o thing_n 1._o in_o his_o terrible_a bull●_n that_o he_o make_v to_o roar_v and_o stare_v most_o dreadful_o 2._o in_o his_o power_n and_o act_n of_o depose_v prince_n 3._o in_o assert_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n vicegerent_n against_o who_o no_o person_n upon_o any_o cause_n or_o pretence_n whatsoever_o aught_o to_o lift_v up_o hand_n or_o tongue_n upon_o the_o penalty_n of_o a_o total_a ruin_n in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o eternal_a ruin_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 7._o the_o little_a horn_n make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n dan._n 7._o 21._o i_o behold_v and_o the_o same_o horn_n make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o prevail_v against_o they_o and_o for_o a_o long_a time_n even_o to_o the_o wear_n out_o of_o the_o poor_a saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a v_a 25._o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v wa●_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o prevail_v against_o they_o and_o that_o to_o their_o ruin_n as_o to_o liberty_n estate_n and_o even_o life_n itself_o as_o the_o true_a witness_n of_o christ_n have_v most_o sad_o experience_v in_o many_o country_n in_o divers_a by_o past_a age_n even_o for_o such_o a_o series_n of_o time_n that_o may_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o wear_n out_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o mo●…_n high._n for_o his_o cruelty_n end_v not_o in_o a_o month_n or_o a_o year_n but_o have_v last_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n so_o that_o for_o length_n of_o time_n number●_n of_o country_n and_o multitude_n of_o person_n there_o be_v no_o power_n that_o ever_o reign_v have_v outdo_v or_o equalise_v this_o vile_a and_o bloody_a monster_n upon_o which_o we_o frame_v this_o argument_n if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v more_o fit_o say_v to_o have_v eye_n like_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n a_o mouth_n speak_v presumptuous_a thing_n and_o look_v more_o stout_a than_o his_o fellow_n to_o have_v make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n to_o have_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o wear_v they_o out_o more_o than_o any_o other_o power_n that_o ever_o yet_o reign_v then_o he_o be_v the_o little_a horn_n or_o vile_a person_n under_o consideration_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o latter_a 8._o the_o little_a horn_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o horn_n dan._n 7._o 24._o and_o he_o shall_v be_v diverse_a from_o the_o first_o and_o shall_v subdue_v three_o king_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o potentate_n in_o these_o four_o respect_n 1._o the_o manner_n of_o his_o rise_n 2._o his_o pretension_n to_o power_n 3._o in_o his_o progress_n to_o his_o height_n of_o dignity_n 4._o in_o his_o management_n of_o the_o power_n he_o have_v usurp_v 1._o he_o be_v small_a or_o little_a in_o his_o rise_n but_o a_o ordinary_a bishop_n before_o he_o come_v to_o be_v a_o temporal_a prince_n 2._o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o hold_v his_o kingdom_n by_o inheritance_n or_o gift_n of_o the_o people_n as_o other_o king_n do_v but_o by_o a_o special_a and_o divine_a
he_o can_v have_v be_v make_v of_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o croisades_n in_o all_o language_n and_o in_o all_o sort_n of_o stile_n a_o sea_n of_o blood_n rivers_n of_o blood_n stream_n of_o blood_n signify_v a_o very_a great_a slaughter_n now_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o the_o croisades_n be_v slaughter_n murder_n which_o fall_v not_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n but_o upon_o the_o people_n all_o be_v turn_v into_o blood._n never_o be_v there_o such_o a_o prodigious_a effusion_n of_o blood_n in_o the_o sea_n i._n e._n among_o the_o people_n in_o the_o first_o crusade_n there_o die_v more_o than_o 2_o million_o of_o man_n in_o 3_o or_o 4_o year_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n do_v lead_v these_o wretched_a creature_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o shambles_n that_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o punishment_n of_o their_o crime_n he_o take_v so_o great_a a_o quantity_n of_o blood_n that_o he_o may_v cure_v the_o ulcer_n of_o christendom_n for_o that_o he_o may_v purge_v it_o of_o that_o vast_a rabble_n he_o permit_v the_o devil_n to_o inspire_v they_o either_o with_o such_o sottish_a superstition_n or_o a_o extravagant_a ambition_n that_o they_o must_v go_v and_o deliver_v the_o holy-land_n or_o go_v and_o conquer_v kingdom_n in_o the_o east_n this_o plague_n light_v only_o on_o the_o sea_n not_o at_o all_o on_o the_o dry_a land_n upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o popedom_n not_o at_o all_o upon_o the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o pope_n improve_v that_o evasion_n to_o greaten_v their_o power_n to_o plunder_v whole_a country_n to_o make_v general_n of_o army_n to_o act_v as_o sovereign_a monarch_n and_o to_o lay_v a_o heavyer_n yoke_n upon_o king_n who_o they_o order_v to_o march_v and_o send_v they_o as_o their_o slave_n into_o the_o east_n and_o during_o their_o absence_n plunder_v their_o kingdom_n we_o must_v not_o say_v he_o imagine_v that_o all_o the_o plague_n lay_v down_o by_o st._n john_n must_v tend_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n or_o to_o the_o diminution_n of_o its_o power_n for_o some_o be_v to_o light_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o that_o empire_n to_o crush_v it_o other_o upon_o the_o people_n to_o punish_v they_o because_o they_o worship_v the_o beast_n the_o plague_n of_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n be_v for_o the_o people_n this_o plague_n of_o croisades_n say_v he_o be_v divide_v into_o two_o plague_n because_o of_o its_o long_a duration_n for_o it_o last_v 200_o year_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o age_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o thirteen_o this_o he_o judge_n the_o time_n of_o the_o 2d_o vial_n and_o plague_n the_o three_o vial_n or_o plague_n fall_v upon_o the_o river_n or_o lesser_a water_n which_o he_o fix_v upon_o some_o particular_a nation_n as_o of_o france_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o st._n lewis_n the_o four_o vial_n pour_v out_o on_o the_o sun_n it_o be_v know_v and_o confess_v say_v he_o of_o all_o who_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o prophecy_n dream_n and_o vision_n that_o the_o heaven_n the_o sun_n the_o constellation_n and_o the_o star_n be_v emblem_n of_o dignity_n and_o grandeur_n on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n the_o sun_n do_v always_o signify_v the_o sovereign_n the_o star_n inferior_n magistrate_n and_o so_o by_o the_o sun_n under_o the_o 6_o seal_n it_o be_v always_o understand_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o pagan_a empire_n that_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v treat_v of_o here_o say_v he_o be_v general_o agree_v to_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o sovereign_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o he_o fix_v upon_o the_o increase_n of_o antichrist_n authority_n and_o power_n in_o the_o thirteen_o and_o fourteen_o century_n to_o be_v mean_v hereby_o when_o the_o sun_n by_o his_o excessive_a &_o scorch_a heat_n i._n e._n the_o pope_n by_o his_o usurp_a authority_n tyrannize_v over_o king_n and_o emperor_n p._n 89._o depose_v and_o take_v away_o their_o crown_n etc._n etc._n the_o five_o vial_n and_o plague_n pour_v on_o the_o feat_n of_o the_o beast_n he_o affirm_v with_o other_o writer_n to_o mean_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o be_v it_o that_o this_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n fall_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n i._n e._n rome_n it_o be_v say_v he_o when_o rome_n lose_v its_o sun_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o forego_n plague_n i._n e._n the_o pope_n the_o papal_a court_n that_o like_o a_o gulf_n or_o whirl-pool_n draw_v to_o it_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n in_o the_o year_n 1305._o clement_n the_o v._o leave_v rome_n to_o go_v to_o avignon_n the_o city_n that_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o world_n then_o become_v desolate_a when_o its_o master_n keep_v their_o seat_n at_o avignon_n p._n 94._o the_o six_o vial_n and_o plague_n he_o affirm_v be_v the_o turk_n who_o pass_v over_o the_o bosphorus_n and_o invade_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a empire_n at_o this_o i_o can_v a_o little_a wonder_n because_o most_o expositor_n conclude_v and_o i_o think_v with_o good_a reason_n that_o the_o rise_v and_o increase_v of_o the_o turkish_a monarchy_n begin_v under_o the_o six_o trumpet_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o because_o it_o be_v say_v the_o angel_n pour_v forth_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n and_o mark_n the_o water_n thereof_o be_v dry_v up_o etc._n etc._n which_o seem_v to_o intimate_v the_o decay_n and_o waste_v of_o the_o turkish_a power_n and_o not_o the_o increase_n of_o it_o but_o he_o will_v have_v we_o understand_v the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n to_o mean_v the_o turk_n and_o not_o euphrates_n p._n 200_o 201._o the_o time_n that_o this_o vial_n be_v a_o pour_v forth_o he_o say_v be_v about_o 125_o or_o 130_o year_n viz._n from_o 1390._o until_o 1526._o by_o this_o he_o must_v believe_v the_o battle_n of_o arma-geddon_a be_v long_o since_o past_a which_o he_o run_v into_o a_o mystery_n by_o show_v that_o arma-geddon_a signify_v a_o cut_n off_o by_o a_o curse_n or_o excommunication_n which_o he_o apply_v to_o the_o order_n law_n and_o false_a oracle_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o the_o antichristian_a head_n there_o be_v say_v he_o it_o be_v know_v a_o curse_n and_o a_o arma-geddon_a at_o the_o end_n of_o every_o canon_n the_o seven_o vial_n and_o plague_n he_o affirm_v be_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o luther_n and_o other_o reformer_n by_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n papist_n lutheran_n and_o reform_a i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v the_o calvinist_n the_o voice_n and_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n that_o be_v say_v to_o be_v under_o the_o seven_o vial_n mean_a he_o say_v the_o voices_z of_o preacher_n who_o labour_v in_o the_o reform_v the_o church_n page_n 217._o the_o great_a city_n he_o affirm_v be_v the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o this_o city_n under_o the_o pour_v forth_o of_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v say_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n this_o he_o say_v be_v exact_o come_v to_o pass_v i._n e._n one_o part_n remain_v with_o antichrist_n one_o part_n do_v separate_v from_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o ausburge_n confession_n a_o three_o part_n do_v separate_v under_o the_o confession_n of_o those_o who_o be_v bare_o style_v the_o reform_a sweden_n denmark_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n make_v the_o second_o part_n england_n and_o the_o unite_a province_n the_o reform_a part_n of_o france_n and_o part_n of_o germany_n make_v the_o three_o part_n these_o say_v he_o be_v the_o three_o grand_a part_n that_o divide_v the_o western_a church_n which_o be_v the_o great_a city_n let_v this_o be_v attentive_o mind_v say_v he_o for_o i_o affirm_v that_o this_o passage_n do_v as_o it_o be_v speak_v with_o a_o tongue_n &_o be_v able_a alone_o to_o convince_v that_o our_o systeme_n of_o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v most_o undoubted_a truth_n this_o division_n of_o the_o great_a city_n into_o three_o part_n so_o clear_o point_v out_o the_o three_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o to_o deny_v it_o can_v proceed_v only_o from_o unreasonable_a passion_n and_o opinionativeness_n and_o if_o we_o have_v hit_v upon_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n we_o have_v do_v so_o in_o all_o for_o if_o this_o character_n of_o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v true_a and_o be_v already_o accomplish_a all_o other_o plague_n be_v also_o accomplish_v and_o if_o they_o be_v accomplish_v i_o do_v bold_o affirm_v they_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o any_o other_o effect_n than_o those_o to_o which_o we_o have_v apply_v they_o he_o further_o show_v that_o england_n can_v make_v a_o four_o part_n because_o in_o doctrine_n she_o agree_v with_o other_o reform_a communion_n in_o which_o she_o differ_v from_o the_o lutheran_n p._n 220._o who_o
refuse_v such_o communion_n etc._n etc._n thus_o say_v he_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v but_o three_o grand_a part_n into_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v divide_v i._n e._n papist_n lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n and_o this_o division_n be_v not_o her_o utter_a ruin_n but_o after_o she_o be_v thus_o divide_v god_n will_v prepare_v to_o give_v she_o the_o last_o cup_n of_o his_o wrath_n which_o signify_v that_o the_o division_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n into_o three_o part_n must_v continue_v until_o the_o complete_a ruin_n of_o popery_n this_o be_v the_o seven_o and_o last_o vial-glass_n which_o thanks_o be_v to_o whore._n god_n will_v in_o a_o little_a time_n be_v run_v out_o now_o we_o have_v that_o we_o seek_v namely_o a_o evidence_n that_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v near_o at_o a_o end_n we_o need_v not_o long_o wait_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n either_o of_o all_o the_o 7_o plague_n as_o some_o of_o our_o interpreter_n say_v or_o of_o some_o of_o the_o 7_o plague_n as_o other_o say_v it_o be_v do_v all_o be_v accomplish_v we_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n first_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a explication_n of_o this_o 16_o chapter_n there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o force_a application_n the_o emblem_n which_o the_o prophet_n make_v use_v do_v exact_o resemble_v the_o event_n set_v down_o in_o history_n second_o that_o in_o the_o application_n of_o these_o seven_o plague_n unto_o the_o event_n every_o thing_n do_v hang_v together_o no_o part_n of_o this_o system_n contradict_v another_o this_o be_v suppose_v i_o do_v entreat_v they_o to_o consider_v if_o chance_n may_v hit_v right_a in_o some_o point_n but_o never_o do_v so_o in_o all_o i_o say_v again_o that_o we_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n for_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v well_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o vial_n which_o be_v distinct_a and_o separate_v from_o other_o last_v 200_o year_n this_o have_v already_o last_v 170_o year_n it_o can_v last_v much_o long_o it_o be_v true_a the_o papal_a authority_n who_o beam_n so_o scorch_v man_n under_o the_o four_o vial_n last_v above_o 200_o year_n but_o this_o be_v because_o it_o be_v inlay_v or_o joint_v in_o those_o that_o precede_v and_o those_o that_o follow_v and_o its_o particular_a strict_a period_n must_v be_v reckon_v to_o be_v only_o 108_o year_n which_o begin_v at_o the_o year_n 1270_o when_o the_o croisades_n end_v and_o continue_v until_o the_o grand_a schism_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1378._o for_o then_o begin_v the_o diminish_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n and_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o seven_o vial_n have_v last_v already_o long_o than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o it_o must_v last_v about_o 200_o year_n which_o none_o of_o the_o other_o have_v do_v but_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o when_o we_o show_v that_o this_o seven_o period_n be_v itself_o divide_v into_o three_o period_n i._n e._n the_o harvest_n the_o vintage_n and_o the_o time_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n be_v already_o past_a the_o time_n betwixt_o be_v almost_o expire_v and_o we_o be_v approach_v to_o the_o vintage_n p._n 223_o 224._o he_o than_o precede_v to_o explain_v what_o he_o understand_v by_o harvest_n and_o vintage_n which_o the_o ingenious_a reader_n may_v guess_v at_o i_o think_v good_a to_o cite_v thus_o much_o of_o this_o author_n for_o their_o sake_n who_o have_v not_o his_o book_n it_o be_v grow_v scarce_o and_o also_o because_o he_o be_v so_o much_o cry_v up_o and_o last_o because_o what_o he_o speak_v concern_v the_o vial_n seem_v new_a nor_o shall_v i_o passover_v this_o man_n sentiment_n about_o the_o vial_n without_o some_o modest_a reflection_n though_o he_o seem_v to_o write_v with_o great_a confidence_n in_o which_o he_o differ_v from_o most_o worthy_a man_n before_o he_o 1._o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n or_o no_o in_o my_o judgement_n about_o the_o 7_o vial_n because_o it_o appear_v to_o i_o very_o clear_a that_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v say_v to_o pour_v they_o out_o be_v bring_v forth_o under_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n to_o which_o i_o find_v some_o worthy_a man_n agree_v which_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v he_o be_v mistake_v 2._o because_o the_o angel_n that_o pour_v they_o forth_o be_v say_v to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n clothe_v in_o pure_a and_o white_a linen_n and_o have_v their_o breast_n gird_v with_o golden_a girdle_n rev._n 15._o 6._o which_o signify_v doubtless_o a_o more_o perfect_a and_o pure_a state_n of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v in_o any_o of_o those_o century_n he_o mention_v when_o divers_a of_o those_o vial_n he_o say_v be_v pour_v cut_v for_o till_o near_o the_o time_n of_o the_o come_n forth_o of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n the_o saint_n and_o people_n of_o god_n be_v call_v witness_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n mourn_v as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o visibility_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n church_n state_n according_a to_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n and_o be_v represent_v as_o a_o few_o or_o small_a number_n of_o scatter_a christian_n but_o under_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o 6._o trumpet_z the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n in_o heaven_n be_v open_v rev._n 15._o 4._o signify_v as_o i_o conceive_v the_o restoration_n of_o the_o church_n to_o its_o former_a glory_n and_o purity_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o that_o the_o witness_n have_v put_v off_o their_o sackcloth_n be_v glorious_o and_o different_o clothe_v which_o will_v not_o be_v perfect_v till_o the_o ascension_n of_o the_o witness_n which_o will_v be_v about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n for_o the_o text_n say_v when_o that_o begin_v to_o be_v sound_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o christ_n rev._n 11._o 15._o 3._o it_o shall_v seem_v strange_a that_o all_o the_o vial_n that_o contain_v in_o they_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n to_o the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n shall_v be_v already_o pour_v out_o save_o the_o remain_a part_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o yet_o so_o little_o be_v do_v comparative_o to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whore_n or_o papistry_n or_o that_o the_o 6._o first_o vial_n shall_v be_v so_o long_a a_o time_n a_o pour_v forth_o and_o so_o little_o effect_v for_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n and_o so_o much_o shall_v be_v expect_v to_o be_v do_v in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n as_o this_o french_a writer_n say_v by_o the_o remain_a part_n of_o the_o seven_o 4._o and_o why_o he_o shall_v suppose_v if_o 2_o or_o 3_o of_o the_o vial_n shall_v not_o be_v yet_o pour_v out_o that_o the_o whore_n and_o beast_n kingdom_n must_v continue_v still_o at_o least_o 200_o year_n i_o know_v not_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v conclude_v with_o some_o worthy_a man_n that_o none_o of_o the_o vial_n shall_v be_v pour_v forth_o to_o this_o day_n yet_o why_o may_v not_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n or_o end_n of_o the_o beast_n kingdom_n be_v near_o for_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v they_o may_v have_v their_o distinct_a period_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v very_o short_a since_o god_n positive_o intimate_v his_o judgement_n for_o the_o ruin_n and_o downfall_n of_o babylon_n shall_v be_v swift_a and_o on_o a_o sudden_a and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o one_o hour_n which_o certain_o signify_v but_o a_o very_a short_a time_n beside_o he_o strange_o confound_v and_o mix_v the_o vial_n with_o some_o of_o the_o trumpet_n which_o i_o can_v see_v any_o ground_n to_o believe_v consider_v the_o method_n god_n use_v in_o this_o book_n moreover_o at_o the_o resurrection_n or_o at_o the_o ascension_n of_o the_o witness_n which_o finish_v the_o second_o woe_n &_o bring_v the_o period_n of_o the_o 6._o trumpet_z than_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n fall_v &_o this_o be_v all_o of_o the_o fall_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n or_o great_a city_n we_o read_v of_o till_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n begin_v begin_v to_o sound_a and_o to_o conclude_v with_o this_o i_o shall_v 15._o say_v with_o what_o our_o late_a annotator_n intimate_v on_o rev._n 11._o 15._o it_o seem_v that_o the_o seven_o seal_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v all_o mention_v in_o the_o same_o form_n of_o speech_n and_o therefore_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v not_o to_o be_v divide_v some_o to_o one_o trumpet_n some_o to_o another_o 2._o because_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n &_o 7_o vial_n be_v one_o &_o the_o same_o thing_n nothing_o be_v reveal_v under_o the_o seven_o vial_n
plague_n of_o egypt_n as_o it_o be_v general_o hold_v than_o it_o be_v probable_a when_o there_o be_v once_o a_o beginning_n they_o will_v sudden_o all_o be_v pour_v out_o some_o have_v observe_v from_o history_n in_o exodus_fw-la that_o within_o the_o space_n of_o 30_o day_n the_o ten_o plague_n fall_v upon_o the_o egyptian_n now_o if_o in_o the_o antitype_n we_o reckon_v a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n as_o it_o be_v often_o in_o prophetical_a type_n than_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n will_v be_v finish_v in_o thirty_o year_n when_o begin_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o a_o short_a work_n will_v the_o lord_n make_v upon_o the_o earth_n rom._n 9_o 28._o when_o those_o vial_n begin_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o earth_n wherefore_o be_v babylon_n fall_n set_v forth_o under_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o great_a millstone_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n by_o a_o mighty_a angel_n not_o only_o to_o denote_v her_o irrecoverable_a desolation_n but_o also_o what_o speedy_a and_o quick_a dispatch_n the_o lord_n will_v make_v when_o he_o call_v his_o angel_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n therefore_o shall_v her_o plague_n come_v upon_o she_o in_o one_o day_n rev._n 18._o 8._o in_o one_o hour_n v_o 10_o 17_o 19_o i●_n a_o moment_n sudden_o isa._n 47._o 11._o why_o 〈◊〉_d ought_v not_o to_o conclude_v her_o plague_n to_o intend_v ●ose_o 7_o last_o plague_n all_o of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o some_o of_o they_o i_o know_v not_o i_o desire_v this_o may_v be_v consider_v hint_v it_o before_o when_o i_o have_v not_o see_v this_o worthy_a writer_n for_o this_o french_a author_n make_v babylon_n a_o ●elling_a many_o hundred_o year_n which_o must_v doubtless_o be_v a_o grand_a mistake_n these_o scripture_n consider_v he_o further_o confirm_v this_o reason_n and_o answer_n objection_n which_o i_o have_v not_o room_n to_o insert_v 5._o i_o can_v conceive_v say_v he_o how_o any_o of_o those_o person_n to_o who_o the_o first_o second_o and_o three_o angel_n be_v ordinary_o apply_v do_v fair_o or_o fit_o parallel_v and_o agree_v with_o what_o the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o certain_a it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n till_o john_n see_v as_o it_o be_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n and_o they_o that_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o over_o his_o image_n and_o over_o his_o mark_n and_o over_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n stand_v on_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n have_v the_o harp_n of_o god_n and_o they_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n rev._n 15._o 1_o 2._o all_o this_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o description_n of_o the_o 14440._o rev._n 14._o 1_o 2._o but_o to_o carry_v these_o thing_n to_o grostead_n armachan_n wickliff_n luther_n etc._n etc._n if_o need_n be_v i_o can_v show_v by_o many_o reason_n of_o the_o improbability_n of_o it_o for_o though_o many_o of_o god_n people_n former_o receive_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n nor_o his_o name_n yet_o to_o say_v any_o of_o they_o during_o the_o 42_o month_n get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n or_o over_o his_o image_n and_o number_n of_o his_o name_n i_o can_v assent_v unto_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v their_o opinion_n be_v well_o bottom_v who_o hold_v this_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o be_v before_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o witness_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o their_o prophesy_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o whilst_o the_o woman_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n it_o be_v strange_a indeed_o to_o think_v the_o witness_n wear_v sackcloth_n or_o in_o a_o mourn_a condition_n can_v be_v say_v to_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n as_o have_v get_v victory_n over_o their_o enemy_n and_o yet_o overcome_v by_o their_o enemy_n for_o the_o song_n of_o moses_n it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o be_v that_o i●_n exodus_fw-la 15._o thou_o have_v overcome_v the_o horse_n and_o his_o r●der_n etc._n etc._n again_o say_v he_o by_o way_n of_o question_n p._n 16._o why_o shall_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n rev._n 15_o &c_n &c_n b●_n carry_v up_o to_o the_o time_n before_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o the_o new_a song_n rev._n 14._o 3._o bring_v down_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o the_o order_n of_o the_o prophecy_n 2._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o song_n if_o right_o understand_v be_v not_o suitable_a to_o any_o time_n in_o which_o the_o beast_n reign_v neither_o last_o can_v it_o be_v show_v that_o ever_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v have_v any_o occasion_n through_o any_o deliverance_n or_o victory_n to_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n etc._n etc._n i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o these_o and_o the_o approach_a day_n 6._o that_o none_o of_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n or_o vial_n be_v yet_o pour_v out_o nor_o will_v be_v till_o after_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o witness_n do_v appear_v for_o this_o reason_n viz._n because_o none_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n come_v forth_o with_o their_o golden_a vial_n until_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n rev._n 15._o 5._o but_o that_o part_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n be_v to_o be_v shut_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o witness_n prophesy_v in_o sackcloth_n may_v be_v gather_v from_o rev._n 11._o 1._o with_o v._n 19_o hence_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v frame_v viz._n no_o angel_n be_v to_o come_v forth_o with_o his_o golden_a vial_n till_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n in_o heaven_n be_v open_v but_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v open_v till_o after_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o witness_n therefore_o no_o angel_n with_o his_o golden_a vial_n be_v come_v forth_o till_o after_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o witness_n the_o proof_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v the_o scripture_n before_o viz._n rev._n 15._o 5._o cap._n 11._o v._n 1_o 19_o now_o if_o any_o do_v think_v that_o the_o four_o last_o angel_n shall_v come_v forth_o from_o the_o temple_n open_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o the_o first_o three_o such_o a_o opinion_n be_v against_o the_o text_n express_o 〈…〉_z say_v the_o seven_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n verse_n 6._o neither_o do_v i_o know_v any_o ground_n they_o have_v who_o think_v that_o the_o angel_n pour_v out_o the_o four_o last_o vial_n shall_v have_v more_o light_n zeal_n faith_n holiness_n etc._n etc._n than_o the_o former_a three_o have_v but_o certain_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n now_o and_o that_o when_o they_o say_v the_o first_o vial_n be_v pour_v out_o nay_o and_o the_o second_o or_o three_o too_o and_o none_o can_v doubt_v but_o the_o open_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n in_o heaven_n point_v to_o some_o great_a church_n glory_n that_o shall_v be_v then_o or_o a_o different_a state_n of_o the_o church_n than_o ever_o be_v before_o under_o the_o beast_n reign_v 7._o neither_o do_v i_o say_v he_o think_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o of_o the_o vial_n which_o some_o suppose_n be_v pour_v out_o make_v good_a what_o be_v say_v rev._n 15._o 4._o for_o thy_o judgement_n be_v make_v manifest_a which_o hold_v forth_o to_o i_o much_o more_o than_o what_o follow_v the_o preach_n of_o grostead_n wickliff_n huss_n luther_n melancthon_n etc._n etc._n or_o the_o swisser_n war_n or_o of_o that_o of_o the_o parliament_n in_o england_n for_o god_n judgement_n notwithstanding_o what_o have_v be_v yet_o do_v remain_v still_o more_o dark_a doubtful_a and_o disputable_a especial_o to_o the_o world_n than_o shall_v be_v under_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o vial_n for_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o beast_n as_o the_o egyptian_n under_o their_o plague_n though_o they_o be_v harden_v and_o repent_v not_o but_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n not_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o shall_v notwithstanding_o see_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n lift_v up_o and_o be_v ashamed_a for_o their_o envy_n at_o his_o people_n isa._n 26._o 11._o so_o manifest_a at_o that_o time_n shall_v his_o judgement_n be_v but_o hitherto_o no_o such_o thing_n have_v appear_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o so_o dark_a and_o hide_a not_o manifest_v have_v the_o act_n of_o god_n be_v to_o his_o enemy_n nay_o and_o not_o clear_a or_o plain_o manifest_v to_o his_o own_o people_n neither_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o their_o different_a apprehension_n and_o opinion_n about_o what_o have_v be_v past_a until_o these_o very_a day_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o mystery_n babylon_n ever_o un●il_n of_o late_o if_o
not_o still_o say_v in_o her_o heart_n i_o sit_v a_o queen_n and_o be_o no_o widow_n and_o shall_v see_v no_o sorrow_n rev._n 18._o 7._o nay_o and_o also_o it_o be_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o antichristian_a party_n in_o their_o write_n and_o ordinary_a discourse_n do_v stiff_o maintain_v that_o god_n judgement_n have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v as_o much_o manifest_v upon_o the_o witness_n i._n e._n the_o heretic_n as_o she_o call_v protestant_n and_o all_o such_o who_o oppose_v they_o as_o those_o of_o their_o church_n viz._n the_o papist_n however_o let_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v hide_v or_o make_v manifest_a to_o they_o certain_o the_o vengeance_n shall_v clear_o be_v see_v and_o know_v to_o the_o godly_a when_o the_o vial_n of_o his_o wrath_n come_v upon_o the_o great_a whore_n or_o when_o the_o hour_n of_o her_o judgement_n shall_v come_v they_o shall_v see_v it_o rejoice_v and_o all_o iniquity_n shall_v stop_v her_o mouth_n psal._n 107._o 42._o 8._o it_o be_v evident_a the_o witness_n do_v not_o put_v off_o their_o sackcloth_n till_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n which_o will_v not_o be_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 42_o month_n of_o the_o beast_n reign_v and_o tyranny_n but_o say_v he_o these_o angel_n which_o pour_v out_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n or_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n have_v put_v off_o their_o sackcloth_n and_o be_v clothe_v in_o pure_a white_a linen_n and_o be_v say_v to_o have_v golden_a girdle_n from_o hence_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v as_o he_o observe_v that_o none_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sackcloth_n state_n during_o the_o 42_o month_n can_v be_v mean_v by_o any_o of_o these_o seven_o angel_n neither_o waldo_n wickliff_n luther_n etc._n etc._n for_o what_o be_v mean_v say_v he_o by_o be_v clothe_v in_o white_a linen_n the_o scripture_n show_v it_o be_v a_o ensign_n of_o honour_n which_o great_a person_n use_v to_o wear_v their_o condition_n and_o state_n be_v change_v gen._n 41._o 42._o est._n 8._o 15._o pro._n 31._o 22._o ezek._n 16._o 10._o psal._n 30._o 11._o the_o truth_n be_v if_o we_o take_v not_o heed_n to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o sackcloth_n time_n of_o mourn_a saint_n and_o the_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v clothe_v with_o white_a linen_n &_o have_v golden_a girdle_n that_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o set_v with_o prince_n even_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o his_o people_n psal._n 113._o 7_o 8._o but_o confound_v these_o time_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v keep_v distinct_a and_o apart_o we_o shall_v want_v that_o excellent_a light_n to_o bring_v thing_n to_o their_o proper_a place_n i_o will_v to_o god_n our_o frenchman_n and_o other_o will_v consider_v this_o for_o i_o find_v those_o that_o affirm_v luther_n mclancton_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v one_o or_o more_o of_o those_o angel_n that_o pour_v out_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o vial_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o witness_n have_v put_v off_o their_o sackcloth_n the_o time_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n be_v expire_v etc._n etc._n but_o jurieu_o deny_v this_o with_o many_o other_o and_o yet_o say_v all_o the_o seven_o angel_n have_v already_o come_v and_o pour_v out_o their_o vial_n and_o yet_o in_o their_o sack_n cloth_n state_n but_o i_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v he_o speak_v right_a 9_o say_v mr._n can_n if_o what_o be_v speak_v rev._n 18._o 21._o of_o the_o mighty_a angel_n take_v up_o a_o great_a millstone_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o sea_n say_v thus_o with_o violence_n shall_v that_o great_a city_n babylon_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o shall_v be_v find_v no_o more_o at_o all_o belong_v to_o the_o vial_n as_o it_o seem_v most_o evident_a than_o what_o be_v attribute_v to_o grostead_n wickliff_n luther_n etc._n etc._n be_v far_o from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o shall_v pour_v forth_o the_o 7_o last_o plague_n thus_o shall_v babylon_n be_v throw_v drown_v etc._n etc._n a_o millstone_n rise_v no_o more_o etc._n etc._n thus_o that_o be_v when_o any_o of_o the_o 7_o angel_n pour_v out_o their_o vial_n the_o work_n shall_v prosper_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o not_o be_v hinder_v nor_o retard_v by_o any_o power_n whatsoever_o but_o hither_o by_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v do_v we_o yet_o upon_o babylon_n she_o have_v not_o so_o fall_v but_o one_o while_o she_o seem_v to_o sink_v and_o then_o rise_v again_o many_o judgement_n have_v be_v pour_v out_o upon_o babylon_n no_o doubt_n of_o that_o nay_o and_o some_o too_o soon_o after_o she_o get_v up_o but_o doubtless_o none_o of_o the_o seven_o last_o judgement_n have_v she_o feel_v to_o this_o day_n every_o vial_n shall_v effectual_o do_v its_o work_n where_o or_o on_o who_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o it_o be_v full_a of_o the_o divine_a wrath_n of_o god._n 10._o according_a to_o this_o notion_n that_o some_o of_o the_o vial_n be_v pour_v out_o he_o observe_v all_o the_o vial_n may_v be_v pour_v out_o and_o but_o a_o little_a may_v be_v do_v for_o 〈◊〉_d three_o or_o four_o have_v be_v pour_v out_o and_o no_o more_o ●ffected_v for_o the_o tyranny_n and_o idolatry_n suppress_v by_o ●hem_n do_v soon_o rise_v and_o spread_v itself_o again_o in_o the_o ●ame_n place_n and_o if_o so_o why_o may_v not_o after_o all_o the_o vial_n be_v ●oured_v out_o the_o enemy_n rally_v or_o rise_v again_o or_o the_o ●nterest_n of_o christ_n be_v suppress_v after_o the_o pour_v ●orth_o of_o the_o last_o vial_n as_o it_o have_v be_v after_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o former_a beside_o how_o can_v we_o think_v the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v ripe_a before_o the_o set_a time_n be_v come_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o its_o cut_n down_o which_o be_v 42_o month_n or_o 1260._o year_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o amorite_n be_v not_o full_o ripe_a or_o that_o harvest_n fit_a for_o cut_v down_o till_o the_o 400_o year_n be_v expire_v gen._n 15._o 13._o and_o yet_o shall_v babylon_n be_v ripe_a and_o the_o harvest_n of_o wrath_n come_v so_o long_o before_o the_o set_n or_o appoint_v time_n of_o harvest_n this_o be_v a_o paradox_n jurieu_o say_v p._n 79._o the_o first_o vial_n and_o plague_n where_o sa●_n i_o begin_v the_o harvest_n be_v in_o the_o ten_o century_n which_o be_v 600_o year_n ago_o and_o above_o so_o many_o year_n before_o the_o set_a time_n of_o harvest_n for_o that_o be_v before_o or_o about_o the_o time_n the_o beast_n be_v in_o the_o height_n of_o his_o glory_n he_o seem_v to_o assert_v the_o harvest_n come_v soon_o after_o the_o seed_n time_n though_o it_o be_v true_a he_o fix_v it_o on_o the_o last_o age_n this_o can_v be_v think_v we_o must_v sure_o make_v the_o first_o vial_n the_o time_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o latter_a the_o time_n of_o the_o vintage_n let_v this_o be_v consider_v certain_o none_o of_o of_o the_o former_a judgement_n on_o babylon_n belong_v to_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n for_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v not_o then_o ripe_a nor_o the_o harvest_n come_v but_o now_o it_o be_v near_a woe_n unto_o the_o earth_n and_o earthly_a man_n the_o gross_a body_n of_o the_o antichristian_a professor_n for_o they_o must_v have_v the_o dregs_o of_o this_o first_o vial_n it_o be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o earth_n those_o that_o partake_v with_o she_o in_o her_o sin_n must_v receive_v of_o her_o plague_n many_o will_v be_v find_v in_o she_o who_o little_o think_v of_o it_o but_o again_o if_o the_o vial_n be_v pour_v forth_o by_o the_o witness_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o beast_n reign_v and_o tyranny_n why_o do_v they_o begin_v the_o vial_n no_o soon_o for_o there_o be_v faithful_a preacher_n who_o bear_v their_o testimony_n against_o the_o beast_n from_o his_o first_o rise_n and_o so_o downward_o all_o along_o and_o it_o have_v much_o like_a effect_n with_o waldo_n luther_n preach_n etc._n etc._n to_o conclude_v with_o what_o mr._n can_n have_v say_v upon_o this_o account_n it_o do_v appear_v to_o i_o that_o he_o be_v right_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o seven_o vial_n not_o be_v yet_o pour_v out_o because_o the_o temple_n be_v say_v to_o be_v fill_v with_o smoke_n from_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v in_o until_o the_o seven_o plague_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n be_v fulfil_v rev._n 15._o 8._o if_o by_o the_o temple_n be_v fill_v with_o smoke_n from_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o spirit_n allude_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o history_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o most_o agree_v to_o then_o here_o be_v signify_v
now_o no_o long_o useful_a to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o great_a desolation_n be_v to_o ensue_v upon_o that_o people_n for_o their_o unbelief_n which_o according_o fell_v out_o and_o be_v bring_v upon_o they_o by_o titus_n son_n of_o vespasian_n some_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n also_o fore-admonished_n they_o mat._n 24._o 15._o luke_n 21._o 20._o add_v now_o these_o 69_o week_n of_o year_n and_o ½_o week_n for_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o week_n which_o amount_v to_o 486_o ½_o unto_o the_o 115_o year_n aforemention_v and_o it_o make_v up_o 601_o ½_o 69_o week_n ½_o 486_o ½_o before_o 115._o in_o all_o 601_o ½_o as_o to_o all_o the_o other_o number_n dan._n 7._o 25._o of_o time_n time_n and_o divide_v of_o time_n and_o the_o same_o dan._n 12._o 7._o and_o the_o 1290_o and_o the_o 1335_o i_o conceive_v all_o relate_v to_o the_o time_n under_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o dan._n 11._o 31._o and_o 12._o 11._o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o and_o dan._n 12._o 11._o that_o from_o the_o time_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v there_o shall_v be_v 1290_o day_n that_o be_v year_n as_o before_o dan._n 8._o 14._o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v cleanse_v that_o the_o purity_n of_o god_n worship_n shall_v be_v restore_v at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o time_n and_o that_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o come_v to_o 1335_o which_o be_v forty_o five_o more_o than_o 1290._o as_o these_o relate_v to_o the_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n and_o god_n worship_v there_o therefore_o not_o proper_o render_v sacrifice_n as_o dan._n 9_o 27._o but_o by_o way_n of_o supplement_n so_o i_o shall_v rather_o offer_v my_o thought_n of_o they_o under_o that_o of_o the_o witness_n prophesy_v etc._n etc._n only_a all_o must_v and_o do_v fall_n in_o within_o the_o time_n of_o this_o great_a number_n of_o 2300_o year_n and_o from_o what_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o it_o we_o may_v guess_v how_o long_o it_o will_v be_v before_o it_o will_v expire_v there_o be_v 601_o ½_o to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o we_o be_v right_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o year_n since_o his_o birth_n for_o divine_a writ_n be_v finish_v a_o little_a after_o his_o death_n we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o go_v by_o take_v off_o the_o year_n of_o his_o life_n which_o be_v 30_o luke_n 3._o 23._o when_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o ministry_n which_o he_o accomplish_v in_o or_o about_o the_o three_o year_n or_o half_a week_n speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n 5._o so_o that_o thirty_o three_o from_o 1686_o there_o rest_v 1653_o which_o add_v to_o 601_o ½_o make_v 2254_o ½_o which_o last_o substract_v from_o the_o capital_a number_n 2300_o there_o remain_v 45_o ½_o the_o only_a overplus_n of_o daniel_n last_o number_n 601_o ½_o 1653_o 2254_o ½_o 2300_o 2254_o ½_o 0045_o ½_o so_o that_o i_o hope_v that_o deliverance_n to_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n be_v not_o far_o off_o and_o all_o our_o sad_a sight_n be_v but_o good_a sign_n to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v there_o be_v something_o object_v the_o which_o with_o the_o answer_n take_v as_o follow_v obj._n that_o this_o calculation_n can_v be_v right_a because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o when_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o second_o temple_n be_v lay_v many_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o chief_a of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v ancient_a man_n that_o have_v see_v the_o first_o temple_n weep_v when_o other_o that_o be_v young_a and_o have_v not_o see_v the_o first_o house_n rejoice_v etc._n etc._n and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v so_o long_o before_o cyrus_n come_v to_o the_o absolute_a government_n and_o before_o the_o decree_n for_o their_o return_n out_o of_o babylon_n to_o build_v the_o house_n of_o god_n they_o must_v be_v old_a than_o in_o reason_n we_o can_v judge_v man_n to_o live_v and_o this_o first_o because_o they_o must_v not_o be_v infant_n when_o carry_v into_o captivity_n for_o than_o they_o can_v not_o remember_v what_o the_o first_o temple_n be_v ●ly_o the_o 70_o year_n of_o captivity_n and_o the_o 21_o year_n of_o darius_n before_o cyrus_n come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n and_o at_o least_o a_o year_n of_o preparation_n before_o they_o begin_v to_o build_v with_o their_o own_o age_n when_o carry_v captive_a which_o can_v not_o be_v in_o reason_n much_o less_o than_o twenty_o year_n be_v 102_o year_n in_o all_o which_o be_v a_o age_n beyond_o what_o usual_o man_n live_v and_o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v many_o of_o those_o ancient_a man_n that_o weep_v etc._n etc._n ans._n first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a go_v into_o captivity_n the_o first_o in_o the_o 3d_o year_n of_o jehoiakim_n 2_o kin._n 24._o 1._o with_o dan._n 1._o 1_o 2._o which_o be_v the_o one_a year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n jer._n 25._o 1._o in_o this_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n be_v carry_v captive_a and_o be_v but_o young_a as_o v_o 4._o this_o jehoiakim_n reign_v in_o all_o 11_o year_n 2_o chron._n 36._o 5._o then_o nabuchadnezzar_n bind_v he_o in_o chain_n and_o carry_v he_o to_o babylon_n v_o 6._o and_o make_v jehoiachin_n king_n in_o his_o stead_n who_o reign_v 3_o month_n and_o 10_o day_n and_o then_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n carry_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o a_o great_a captivity_n of_o the_o people_n 2_o king_n 24._o 10._o to_o 17._o this_o be_v the_o second_o go_v into_o captivity_n zedekiah_n be_v make_v king_n by_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n and_o reign_v 11_o year_n as_o 2_o kin._n 24._o 18._o in_o the_o last_o of_o who_o reign_n and_o the_o 19_o of_o nebuchadnezzar_n jerusalem_n be_v take_v as_o 2_o kin._n 25._o 8._o with_o jer._n 52._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 12_o 13._o and_o burn_v with_o the_o temple_n this_o be_v the_o three_o and_o last_o go_v into_o captivity_n between_o which_o and_o the_o first_o it_o evident_o appear_v there_o be_v 18_o or_o 19_o year_n and_o the_o temple_n be_v not_o destroy_v till_o the_o last_o so_o that_o the_o ancient_a man_n speak_v of_o in_o ezra_n may_v be_v of_o the_o last_o go_v into_o captivity_n and_o then_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o reckon_v they_o old_a than_o 20_o year_n when_o carry_v captive_a 51_o year_n of_o the_o captivity_n 19_o be_v go_v before_o and_o 21_o of_o darius_n in_o all_o 92_o year_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a many_o may_v live_v to_o that_o age._n obj._n but_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o 70_o year_n do_v begin_v in_o the_o one_a of_o these_o go_n into_o captivity_n ans._n very_o plain_o for_o in_o jer._n 28._o 3._o the_o false_a prophet_n say_v that_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n shall_v be_v break_v and_o the_o captivity_n shall_v return_v in_o two_o year_n in_o the_o 29_o of_o jer._n the_o lord_n tell_v they_o that_o be_v then_o in_o captivity_n that_o they_o shall_v build_v house_n plant_v garden_n and_o take_v wife_n in_o the_o land_n of_o their_o captivity_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o place_n for_o in_o the_o peace_n thereof_o they_o shall_v have_v peace_n and_o and_o in_o the_o ten_o verse_n that_o after_o seventy_o year_n be_v accomplish_v they_o shall_v return_v and_o not_o before_o so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o seventy_o year_n in_o god_n appointment_n do_v begin_v in_o their_o go_n into_o captivity_n that_o be_v then_o in_o captivity_n and_o not_o in_o their_o captivity_n that_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v which_o be_v not_o till_o the_o last_o of_o zedekiah_n reign_n obj._n 2._o zerubbabel_n who_o come_v out_o of_o captivity_n the_o prince_n and_o governor_n do_v not_o only_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n ezra_n 3._o 8._o but_o do_v also_o finish_v it_o c._n 5._o 2._o now_o if_o the_o interruption_n be_v seventy_o year_n he_o must_v be_v very_o old_a when_o he_o finish_v it_o or_o very_o young_a to_o be_v chief_a when_o they_o first_o come_v up_o and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n ans._n we_o know_v they_o be_v reckon_v prince_n or_o chief_n by_o their_o be_v elder_a brother_n or_o family_n whether_o younger_n or_o elder_a in_o year_n and_o he_o may_v live_v as_o doubtless_o he_o do_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o interruption_n and_o be_v twenty_o or_o thirty_o year_n old_a when_o he_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n and_o be_v but_o ninety_o or_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a when_o the_o temple_n be_v finish_v and_o we_o read_v
to_o scatter_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n than_o all_o shall_v be_v finish_v i_o e._n the_o suffering_n of_o the_o church_n or_o deliverance_n shall_v thence_o begin_v and_o bear_v date_n from_o the_o end_n of_o this_o three_o year_n and_o ½_o in_o dan._n 7._o 25._o he_o tell_v who_o shall_v act_v this_o last_o part_n compare_v with_o rev._n 11._o and_o in_o rev._n 12._o 14._o how_o god_n even_o in_o that_o time_n will_v provide_v for_o his_o church_n when_o the_o devil_n pour_v out_o his_o last_o wrath_n upon_o she_o know_v his_o time_n be_v short_a and_o what_o time_n this_o shall_v be_v except_o the_o three_o year_n and_o ½_o of_o the_o witness_n lie_v dead_a i_o can_v see_v the_o time_n when_o babylon_n shall_v say_v in_o her_o heart_n she_o sit_v a_o queen_n shall_v see_v no_o sorrow_n widowhood_n or_o loss_n of_o child_n any_o more_o have_v accomplish_v what_o she_o have_v be_v 1260._o day_n labour_v 1260_o 425_o 1685._o at_o the_o slaughter_n and_o death_n of_o the_o witness_n who_o she_o have_v now_o dead_a at_o her_o foot_n therefore_o they_o make_v merry_a send_v gift_n to_o one_o another_o not_o know_v how_o near_o utter_a destruction_n be_v at_o her_o door_n she_o be_v like_o pharaoh_n of_o old_a but_o a_o noise_n and_o past_o her_o time_n for_o i_o conceive_v the_o witness_n can_v be_v say_v to_o prophesy_v when_o dead_a therefore_o this_o time_n follow_v immediate_o upon_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o day_n of_o their_o prophecy_n which_o end_v in_o 1685_o according_a to_o the_o precede_a computation_n at_o which_o time_n popery_n come_v to_o be_v enthrone_v in_o this_o nation_n accomplish_v the_o slaughter_n and_o death_n of_o the_o witness_n the_o time_n of_o who_o lie_v dead_a which_o be_v to_o be_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a be_v add_v to_o 1685_o amount_v to_o 1688_o and_o a_o half_a which_o be_v the_o very_a time_n of_o god_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n by_o his_o present_a providence_n to_o save_v these_o distress_a nation_n finis_fw-la a_o catalogue_n of_o book_n print_v for_o nath-crouch_a at_o the_o bell_n in_o the_o poultry_n near_o cheapside_n history_n 1._o england_n monarch_n or_o a_o relation_n of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a transaction_n from_o julius_n caesar_n adorn_v with_o poem_n and_o the_o picture_n of_o every_o monarch_n from_o k._n will._n the_o conqueror_n to_o this_o time_n with_o a_o list_n of_o the_o nobility_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o in_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o other_o useful_a particular_n price_n one_o shilling_n 2._o the_o history_n of_o the_o house_n of_o orange_n or_o a_o relation_n of_o the_o magnanimous_a atchivement_n of_o his_o majesty_n renown_a predecessor_n &_o likewise_o o●_n his_o own_o heroic_a action_n till_o the_o late_a glorious_a revolution_n together_o with_o the_o history_n of_o k._n william_n and_o q._n marry_o be_v a_o account_n of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a passage_n to_o this_o time_n by_o r._n b._n price_n one_o shilling_n 3._o the_o history_n of_o the_o two_o late_a king_n charles_n ii_o and_o james_n ii_o and_o of_o the_o most_o observable_a passage_n during_o their_o reign_n and_o the_o secret_a french_a and_o popish_a intrigue_n in_o those_o time_n pr._n 1s_o 4._o the_o history_n of_o oliver_n cromwell_n l._n pro●ector_n be_v a_o impartial_a account_n of_o all_o the_o ●attles_n seiges_n &_o military_a achievement_n wherein_o he_o wa●_n engage_v in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n and_o of_o his_o civil_a administration_n when_o he_o be_v in_o supreme_a dignity_n till_o his_o death_n with_o a_o character_n of_o his_o humour_n temper_n and_o inclination_n relate_v matter_n of_o fact_n without_o passion_n or_o partiality_n adorn_v with_o picture_n of_o some_o remarkable_a passage_n by_o r._n b._n the_o three_o edition_n very_o much_o enlarge_v and_o alter_v price_n 1_v 5._o the_o war_n in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n contain_v a_o account_n of_o all_o the_o battle_n s●eges_n and_o other_o remarkable_a transaction_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n charles_n i._n 1625._o to_o 1660_o the_o trial_n of_o ●_o charles_n i._o at_o large_a and_o his_o last_o speech_n with_o picture_n of_o several_a accident_n pr._n 1._o shilling_n 6._o historical_a remark_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o present_a state_n of_o london_n &_o westminster_n show_v the_o foundation_n wall_n gate_n bridges_n church_n rivers_n ward_n hall_n hospital_n school_n inn_n of_o court_n charter_n and_o privilege_n thereof_o with_o the_o most_o remarkable_a accident_n as_o to_o war_n fire_n plagnes_n etc._n etc._n for_o above_o 900_o year_n past_a pr._n one_o shilling_n 7._o admirable_a curiosity_n rarity_n and_o wonder_n in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n or_o a_o account_n of_o many_o remarkable_a person_n and_o place_n &_o of_o the_o battle_n sieges_n earthquake_n tempest_n inundation_n fire_n thunder_n murder_n &_o other_o occurrence_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n past_a with_o the_o natural_a and_o artificial_a rarity_n in_o every_o county_n &_o several_a picture_n p._n 1●_n 8._o the_o history_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o scotland_n contain_v a_o account_n of_o all_o the_o war_n battle_n &_o other_o remarkable_a transaction_n revolution_n &_o state_n intrigue_n in_o that_o nation_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o 72._o king_n &_o queen_n to_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n william_n ii_o intermix_v with_o variety_n of_o strange_a accident_n prodigious_a appearance_n and_o other_o considerable_a event_n and_o a_o list_n of_o the_o present_a nobility_n of_o that_o kingdom_n illustrate_v with_o picture_n pr._n one_o shilling_n 9_o the_o history_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n be_v a_o account_n of_o all_o the_o battle_n seiges_n &_o other_o memorable_a passage_n during_o the_o late_a war_n there_o till_o the_o entire_a reduction_n thereof_o by_o the_o victorious_a arm_n of_o k._n will._n iii_o to_o which_o be_v prefix_v a_o relation_n of_o the_o ancient_a inhabitant_n &_o the_o first_o conquest_n of_o that_o nation_n by_o k._n henry_n ii_o the_o horrid_a rebellion_n in_o 1641._o &_o the_o popish_a and_o arbitrary_a design_n in_o the_o last_o reign_v pr._n 1s_o 10_o the_o history_n of_o the_o principality_n of_o wales_n in_o three_o part_n contain_v 1._o a_o brief_a account_n of_o the_o ancient_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o britain_n and_o wales_n till_o the_o final_a extinguish_n of_o the_o royal_a british_a line_n 2._o remark_n upon_o the_o live_v of_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o wales_n of_o the_o royal_a family_n of_o england_n from_o k._n edward_n i_o to_o this_o time_n particular_o of_o edward_n the_o black_a prince_n of_o wales_n who_o with_o 30000_o english_a defeat_v a_o army_n of_o 100000_o french_a at_o cressy_n &_o at_o poitiers_n with_o 10000_o beat_v 80000_o and_o take_v john_n the_o french_a king_n prisoner_n also_o of_o hen._n of_o monmouth_n afterward_o k._n henry_n v._o who_o with_o 13000_o rout_v 90000_o french_a who_o son_n henry_n vi._n be_v crown_v k._n of_o france_n at_o paris_n 3._o remarkable_a observation_n on_o the_o most_o memorable_a person_n and_o place_n in_o wales_n and_o of_o divers_a considerable_a passage_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n past_a with_o the_o birth_n and_o strange_a action_n of_o merlin_n the_o famous_a welsh_a prophet_n and_o the_o natural_a and_o artificial_a rarity_n in_o every_o county_n of_o that_o principality_n price_n one_o shilling_n 11._o the_o unfortunate_a co●rt_n favourite_n of_o england_n exemplify_v in_o some_o remark_n upon_o the_o live●_n action_n and_o fatal_a fall_n of_o divers_a great_a man_n who_o have_v be_v favourite_n to_o several_a english_a king_n and_o queen_n namely_o i._o peirce_n gaveston_n favourite_n to_o k._n ed._n 2._o two_o iii_o hugh_n spencer_n the_o father_n and_o son_n both_o favourito●_n to_o k._n kd._n ●_o iu_o rog._n mortimer_n favourite_n to_o q_o isabe●_n mother_n to_o k._n ed._n 3._o with_o their_o private_a amour_n etc._n etc._n v._o h._n stafford_n favourite_n to_o crook_n back_o richard_n with_o that_o king_n be_v secret_a intrigue_n for_o usurp_a the_o crown_n &_o murder_v his_o nephew_n likewise_o the_o character_n of_o jane_n shore_n by_o sir_n tho._n more_n who_o see_v she_o vi_o cardinal_n woolsey_n vii_o tho._n l._n cromwell_n both_o favourite_n to_o k._n henry_n 8._o viii_o e._n of_o essex_n favourite_n to_o q._n elizabeth_n ix_o d._n of_o buck_n favourite_n to_o k._n james_n i._n &_o k._n charles_n i._n x._o e._n of_o strafford_n favourite_n to_o k._n charles_n i._o with_o all_o their_o picture_n price_n one_o shilling_n 12._o the_o english_a empire_n in_o america_n or_o a_o prospect_n of_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n in_o the_o west-indies_n namely_o newfoundland_n new-england_n new-york_n new-jersey_n pensylvania_n mary-land_n virginia_n carolina_n bermudas_n berbuda_n anguilla_n monsetrat_n dominica_n st._n vincent_n antego_n mevis_n or_o
nevis_n st._n christopher_n barbadoe_n &_o jamaica_n with_o a_o account_n of_o their_o discovery_n situation_n and_o product_n the_o religion_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o indian_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o be_v prefix_v a_o relation_n of_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o new-world_n and_o of_o the_o remarkable_a voyage_n of_o s●bastian_n cabot_n c._n frobisher_n captain_n davis_n c._n weymouth_n c._n hull_n c._n hudson_n sir_n t._n ca●endish_n the_o e._n of_o c●mberland_n sir_n w._n raleigh_n &_o other_o english_a worthy_n with_o picture_n of_o the_o strange_a fruit_n bird_n beast_n fish_n infect_v serpent_n &_o monster_n find_v in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world._n pr._n 1●_n 13._o a_o view_n of_o the_o english_a acquisition_n in_o guine●_n &_o the_o east-indies_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o religion_n government_n war_n strange_a custom_n beast_n serpe●●●_n monster_n &_o other_o observables_n in_o those_o country_n a_o description_n of_o the_o iste_fw-la of_o st._n helena_n and_o the_o bay_n of_o sould●nia_n intermix_v with_o pleasant_a relation_n pr._n 1●_n 14._o the_o english_a hero_n or_o sir_n francis_n drake_n revive_v be_v a_o full_a account_v of_o the_o dangerous_a voyage_n admirable_a adventure_n notable_a discovery_n &_o ●●●gnanimous_a achievement_n of_o that_o valiant_a and_o re●●owned_a commander_n as_o ●_o his_o voyage_n in_o 1572._o to_o ●…os_n in_o the_o west_n indies_n where_o they_o see_v a_o pile_n of_o bar_n of_o silver_n near_o 70_o foot_n long_o 10_o foot_n broad_a and_o 〈◊〉_d foot_n high_a ii_o his_o encompass_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o 1577._o which_o he_o perform_v in_o 2_o year_n and_o 10_o month_n gain_v a_o ●ast_a quantity_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n iii_o his_o voyage_n into_o america_n in_o 1585._o and_o take_v the_o town_n of_o st._n j●go_n st._n domingo_n carthagena_n and_o st._n augustine_n iu._n his_o last_o voyage_n into_o those_o country_n in_o 1595._o with_o his_o death_n and_o burial_n revise_v correct_v enlarge_v and_o beautify_v with_o picture_n by_o r._n b._n price_n one_o shilling_n 15._o two_o journey_n to_o jerusalem_n contain_v first_o a_o account_n of_o the_o travel_n of_o a_o english_a pilgrim_n some_o year_n since_o and_o what_o accident_n befall_v they_o in_o their_o journey_n to_o jerusalem_n grand_fw-fr cairo_n alexandria_n etc._n etc._n ii_o the_o travel_n of_o 14_o englishman_n in_o 1669._o with_o the_o antiquity_n monument_n &_o memorable_a place_n mention_v in_o scripture_n to_o which_o be_v prefix_v memorable_a remark_n on_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a state_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n as_o 1._o a_o description_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n its_o situation_n fertility_n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o several_a captivity_n of_o the_o jew_n 3._o probable_a conjecture_n what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n carry_v captive_a by_o the_o assyrian_n with_o divers_a pertinent_a relation_n pursuant_n thereto_o 4._o the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n since_o their_o extermination_n with_o the_o present_a condition_n of_o palestine_n 5._o of_o the_o septuagint_n or_o 70_o jewish_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n together_o with_o a_o relation_n of_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o hungary_n in_o 1650._o to_o examine_v the_o scripture_n concern_v christ._n write_v by_o s._n b._n a_o eye-witness_n the_o wonderful_a delusion_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o a_o false_a christ_n at_o smyrna_n 1666._o the_o final_a extirpation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o persia_n the_o same_o year_n and_o the_o occasion_n thereof_o the_o proceed_n between_o the_o jew_n &_o ●_o o._n cromwell_n l._n pro●_n in_o 1655._o the_o epistle_n of_o agbarus_n to_o our_o saviour_n with_o his_o answer_n beautify_v with_o picture_n pr._n 1●_n 16._o extraordinary_a adventure_n of_o several_a famous_a man_n with_o the_o strange_a event_n &_o signal_n mutation_n and_o change_n in_o the_o fortune_n of_o divers_a illustrious_a place_n and_o person_n in_o all_o age_n be_v a_o account_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o stupendous_a revolution_n accident_n and_o observable_a matter_n in_o divers_a state_n and_o province_n throughout_o the_o world_n with_o picture_n pr._n 1●_n 17._o the_o history_n of_o the_o nine_o worthy_n of_o the_o world_n three_o whereof_o be_v gentile_n 1._o hector_n some_o of_o priamus_n k._n of_o troy._n 2._o alexander_n the_o great_a king_n of_o macedon_n 3._o ju●●us_fw-la caesar_n first_o emp._n of_o rome_n three_o jew_n 4._o joshua_n c._n general_n of_o israel_n 5._o david_n k._n of_o israel_n 6._o juda●_n maccabeus_n a_o valiant_a jewish_a commander_n against_o an●iochus_n three_o christian_n 7._o arthu●_n k._n of_o britain_n 8._o charles_n the_o great_a k._n of_o france_n &_o em●_n of_o germany_n 9_o god_n frey_n of_o bullen_n k._n of_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o account_n of_o their_o life_n and_o victory_n with_o poem_n and_o the_o picture_n of_o each_o worthy_a by_o r._n b._n pr._n 1●_n 18._o female_a excellency_n or_o the_o lady_n glory_n illustrate_v in_o the_o live_v of_o nine_o famous_a woman_n at_o 1._o deborah_n the_o prophetess_n 2._o the_o valiant_a judith_n 3._o q._n esther_n 4._o the_o virtuous_a susanna_n 5._o the_o chaste_a lucretia_n 6._o boadicia_n q._n of_o britain_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o nero_n contain_v a_o account_n of_o the_o original_a inhabitant_n of_o britain_n the_o history_n of_o danaus_n and_o his_o fifty_o daughter_n who_o murder_v their_o husband_n in_o one_o night_n of_o the_o valour_n of_o boadicia_n under_o who_o conduct_n the_o britain_n slay_v 70_o thousand_o roman_n with_o other_o remarkable_a particular_n 7._o mariam_n wife_n of_o k._n herod_n 8._o clotilda_n q_o of_o france_n 9_o andegona_n princess_n of_o spain_n adorn_v with_o poem_n and_o picture_n pr._n 1●_n 19_o wonderful_a prodigy_n of_o judgement_n and_o mercy_n discover_v in_o above_o 300_o memorable_a history_n contain_v 1._o dreadful_a judgement_n upon_o atheist_n blasphemer_n &_o perjure_a villain_n 2._o the_o miserable_a end_n of_o many_o magician_n etc._n etc._n 3._o remarkable_a prediction_n &_o presage_n of_o approach_a death_n &_o how_o the_o event_n have_v be_v answerable_a 4._o fearful_a judgement_n upon_o bloody_a tyrant_n murderer_n etc._n etc._n 5._o admirable_a deliverance_n from_o imminent_a danger_n &_o deplorable_a distress_n at_o sea_n &_o land_n last_o divine_a goodness_n to_o penitent_n with_o the_o die_a thought_n of_o several_a famous_a man_n concern_v a_o future_a state._n with_o picture_n pr._n 1●_n 20_o unparalleled_a variety_n or_o the_o matchless_a action_n and_o passion_n of_o mankind_n display_v in_o near_o 300_o notable_a instance_n &_o example_n discover_v the_o transcendent_a effect_n 1._o of_o love_n friendship_n and_o gratitude_n 2._o of_o magnanimity_n courage_n and_o fidelity_n 3_o of_o chastity_n temperance_n and_o humility_n and_o thou_o contrary_a the_o tremendous_a consequence_n 4_o of_o hatred_n revenge_n and_o ingratitude_n 5._o of_o cowardice_n barbarity_n &_o treachery_n 6._o of_o unchastity_n intemperance_n and_o ambition_n embellish_v with_o figure_n pr._n 1●_n 21._o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n or_o the_o history_n of_o demon_n spectre_n witch_n apparitions_z &_o other_o supernatural_a delusion_n &_o malicious_a imposture_n of_o the_o devil_n contain_v near_o 80_o memorable_a relation_n fore_v and_o domestic_a ancient_a and_o modern_a collect_v from_o author_n of_o undoubted_a verity_n with_o a_o preface_n obviate_a the_o common_a objection_n of_o the_o sadducee_n &_o atheist_n of_o the_o age_n who_o deny_v the_o be_v of_o spirit_n witches_z etc._n etc._n with_o picture_n price_n one_o shilling_n 22._o surprise_v miracle_n of_o nature_n and_o art_n in_o two_o part_n contain_v 1._o miracle_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o wonderful_a sign_n and_o prodigious_a aspect_n and_o appearance_n in_o the_o heaven_n earth_n and_o sea_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a comet_n and_o other_o prodigy_n from_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n 2._o miracle_n of_o art_n describe_v the_o most_o magnificent_a building_n 〈◊〉_d other_o curious_a invention_n in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o seven_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n &_o many_o other_o excellent_a structure_n and_o rarity_n throughout_o the_o earth_n beautify_v with_o picture_n price_n one_o shilling_n 23._o the_o general_a history_n of_o earthquake_n or_o a_o account_n of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a earthquake_n in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o creation_n to_o this_o time_n particular_o those_o late_o in_o naples_n smyrna_n jamaica_n england_n and_o sicily_n with_o a_o description_n of_o the_o famous_a burn_a mount_n ae●na_n and_o several_a other_o late_a strange_a accident_n as_o i._o a_o surprise_v account_n of_o angel_n sing_v psalm_n in_o the_o air_n over_o the_o ruin_n of_o a_o protestant_a church_n in_o france_n in_o the_o year_n 1686._o with_o the_o word_n they_o sing_v in_o the_o hear_n of_o many_o hundred_o ii_o the_o life_n of_o a_o great_a person_n of_o near_a a_o hundred_o year_n old_a now_o a_o hermit_n in_o a_o forest_n
letter_n with_o many_o other_o very_o useful_a for_o instruct_v of_o young_a person_n by_o r._n b._n price_n bind_v 6d_o 35._o antichrist_n storm_v or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n prove_v to_o be_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a whore_n rev._n 17._o by_o many_o &_o undeniable_a argument_n answer_v all_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o all_o other_o together_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o ancient_n and_o modern_a divine_n &_o most_o eminent_a writer_n concern_v the_o rise_n and_o final_a ruin_n of_o the_o beast_n &_o babylon_n prove_v it_o will_v be_v in_o this_o present_a age_n with_o a_o account_n of_o many_o strange_a prediction_n relate_v to_o these_o present_a time_n by_o b._n keach_n price_n one_o shilling_n 36._o the_o devout_a soul_n daily_a exercise_n in_o prayer_n contemplation_n &_o praise_n contain_v devotion_n for_o morning_n noon_n &_o night_n for_o every_o day_n in_o the_o week_n with_o prayer_n before_o and_o after_o the_o holy_a communion_n and_o likewise_o for_o person_n of_o all_o condition_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n with_o grace_n and_o thanksigving_n before_o and_o after_o meat_n by_o r._n p._n d._n d._n price_n bind_v six_o penny_n 37._o sacramental_a meditation_n upon_o divers_a select_a place_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o believer_n be_v assist_v in_o prepare_v their_o heart_n &_o exciting_a their_o affection_n &_o grace_n when_o they_o draw_v nigh_o to_o god_n in_o that_o most_o awful_a and_o solemn_a ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n by_o jo._n flavel_n late_a minister_n of_o christ_n in_o devon._n price_n one_o shilling_n 38_o jacob_n wrestle_a with_o god_n and_o prevail_a or_o a_o treatise_n concern_v the_o necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o faith_n in_o prayer_n wherein_o divers_a weighty_a question_n and_o case_n of_o conscience_n about_o pray_v in_o faith_n be_v state_v and_o resolve_v for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o scrupulous_a conscience_n conviction_n of_o formal_a hypocrite_n awaken_n of_o all_o both_o weak_a and_o strong_a o_o this_o great_a duty_n of_o prayer_n by_o t._n taylor_n former_o minister_n at_o st._n edmund_n bury_v now_o at_o cambridge_n price_n one_o shilling_n 39_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n or_o good_a news_n for_o repent_v sinner_n be_v a_o account_n of_o the_o remarkable_a experience_n &_o evidence_n of_o many_o eminent_a christian_n in_o several_a declaration_n make_v by_o they_o upon_o solemn_a occasion_n display_v they_o exceed_v riches_n of_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o love_n of_o god_n in_o support_v they_o under_o violent_a temptation_n &_o at_o length_n fill_v their_o soul_n with_o divine_a consolation_n with_o the_o memorable_a conversion_n exemplary_a repentance_n and_o die_v expression_n of_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o rochester_n approve_a of_o as_o very_o necessary_a for_o comfort_v poor_a doubt_v believer_n by_o w._n dyer_n minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n price_n one_o shilling_n 40._o the_o welcome_a communicant_a contain_v brief_a direction_n to_o the_o weak_a christian_n how_o to_o proceed_v from_o one_o grace_n to_o another_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n that_o so_o they_o may_v come_v with_o cheerfulness_n and_o acceptance_n to_o the_o lord_n table_n together_o with_o devotion_n and_o prayer_n before_o at_o and_o after_o the_o receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n by_o a._n h._n d._n d._n price_n six_o penny_n finis_fw-la ri●●mus_fw-la st._n thom._n adsac●_n eucharist_n rev._n 17._o v._n 11._o 6._o 16._o 16._o cum_fw-la inter_fw-la in_o glosl_n extr_n job_n 22._o in_o liu_o 2._o 2._o de_fw-fr expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la verbo_fw-la epiphanius_n horis_fw-la 97._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la totum_fw-la de_fw-fr imag._n 1._o 2._o bernard_n livius_n l._n 1._o plutarch_n in_o numa_n bellar._n de_fw-fr imag._n sanct._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o isa_n 40._o 18._o gal._n 3._o 13._o quis_fw-la nescit_fw-la vo●usi_fw-la bithinice_n qualia_fw-la demens_fw-la egyptus_n protent_a a_o colat_fw-la etc._n etc._n j●venal_n sit_v 15._o dan._n 11._o 21._o ver_fw-la 22._o ver_fw-la 23._o dan._n 11._o 35._o pet._n jurieu_o accom_a prophe_n p._n 37._o see_v his_o preface_n advice_n to_o all_o christian_n here_o i_o must_v n●te_v sith_o by_o the_o church_n he_o speak_v of_o thus_o divide_v into_o three_o part_n be_v mean_v great_a babylon_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o f●llows_v plain_o from_o hence_o that_o all_o these_o three_o part_n be_v antichristian_a and_o but_o as_o so_o many_o limb_n of_o the_o great_a whore._n pool_n annot_n on_o rev._n 11._o 15._o 15._o in_o this_o he_o agree_v much_o with_o dr._n goodwin_n and_o many_o other_o english_a writer_n that_o the_o slay_v of_o the_o witness_n be_v not_o a_o temporal_a slay_v but_o only_o ariail_a death_n and_o it_o much_o comport_v as_o we_o before_o have_v note_v with_o the_o late_a dismal_a day_n in_o england_n our_o time_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o late_a king_n and_o his_o confederate_n have_v sufficient_o make_v this_o good_a which_o the_o dr._n so_o long_o ago_o hint_v hint_v so_o it_o be_v now_o by_o france_n see_v mr_n knowles_n exposition_n on_o the_o rev._n p._n 130._o ans._n ans._n
a_o most_o glorious_a pour_v forth_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o the_o angel_n who_o pour_v out_o the_o vial_n and_o that_o they_o must_v tarry_v in_o the_o temple_n as_o the_o disciple_n be_v to_o do_v at_o jerusalem_n until_o endue_v with_o power_n from_o on_o high_a luk._n 24._o 59_o and_o this_o may_v be_v expect_v at_o the_o ascension_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o not_o before_o for_o as_o yet_o we_o see_v not_o such_o a_o spirit_n give_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o from_o his_o power_n nor_o may_v we_o expect_v it_o until_o then_o that_o the_o church_n come_v out_o of_o the_o wilderness_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n and_o as_o terrible_a as_o a_o army_n with_o banrer_n cant._n 6._o 4._o and_o like_a pillar_n of_o smoke_n perfume_v with_o myrrh_n and_o frankincese_n cart._n 3._o 6._o 7._o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o 7_o last_o plague_n for_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o enemy_n will_v be_v the_o time_n of_o glory_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o 14440_o on_o mount_n zion_n with_o harp_n etc._n etc._n sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n etc._n etc._n be_v hold_v forth_o i_o be_o persuade_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o seven_o angel_n with_o the_o seven_o vial_n or_o seven_o last_o plague_n which_o day_n we_o hope_v be_v now_o even_o upon_o we_o or_o very_o near_o and_o that_o we_o may_v let_v in_o what_o light_n worthy_a man_n of_o different_a opinion_n have_v help_v we_o to_o about_o the_o slay_v and_o resurrection_n of_o the_o witness_n we_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o brief_a account_n of_o what_o jurieu_n our_o french_a author_n say_v of_o they_o see_v p._n 241._o etc._n etc._n these_o word_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n must_v say_v he_o not_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v say_v when_o the_o 1260_o year_n shall_v be_v finish_v for_o after_o the_o 1260_o year_n be_v run_v out_o there_o can_v be_v no_o persecution_n see_v the_o beast_n shall_v have_v lose_v his_o power_n so_o that_o this_o persecution_n must_v begin_v and_o end_v within_o the_o 1260_o year_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o end_n of_o they_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a custom_n not_o only_o of_o scripture_n but_o of_o all_o man_n to_o say_v that_o something_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o this_o or_o that_o be_v finish_v because_o it_o happen_v when_o that_o thing_n be_v finish_v and_o very_o near_o its_o end_n this_o be_v therefore_o the_o last_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n against_o the_o church_n this_o persecution_n have_v its_o character_n 1._o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o war_n the_o beast_n that_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o they_o 2._o this_o war_n of_o persecution_n must_v end_v in_o a_o victory_n over_o the_o two_o witness_n and_o shall_v overcome_v they_o mark_v god_n do_v not_o reckon_v the_o death_n and_o martyrdom_n which_o the_o faithful_a suffer_v for_o the_o truth_n as_o a_o victory_n that_o the_o devil_n gain_v over_o they_o a_o very_a good_a note_n for_o it_o be_v say_v they_o i._n e._n the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n overcome_v they_o i._n e._n the_o beast_n and_o his_o emissary_n and_o they_o love_v not_o their_o life_n unto_o the_o death_n rev._n 12._o 11._o he_o speak_v of_o martyr_n when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o overcome_v i_o will_v make_v to_o sit_v down_o on_o my_o throne_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o beast_n shall_v overcome_v the_o witness_n this_o signify_v that_o he_o shall_v make_v they_o saint_n under_o their_o trial_n which_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v well_o observe_v that_o we_o discern_v the_o singular_a character_n of_o this_o present_a persecution_n that_o have_v conquer_v and_o overcome_v above_o a_o million_o of_o soul_n he_o mean_v the_o late_a and_o present_a persecution_n in_o france_n 3._o this_o victory_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v prevail_v even_o to_o a_o total_a extinction_n of_o profession_n there_o shall_v remain_v no_o more_o sign_n of_o outward_a life_n in_o the_o faithful_a who_o shall_v stand_v for_o truth_n england_n they_o shall_v lie_v on_o the_o ground_n as_o dead_a body_n 4._o this_o murder_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o persecution_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n 5._o the_o death_n of_o these_o witness_n must_v be_v 3_o year_n and_o a_o half_a denote_v these_o 3_o year_n and_o a_o half_a 6._o during_o those_o 3_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o truth_n shall_v remain_v as_o it_o be_v dead_a but_o notwithstanding_o not_o bury_v man_n shall_v not_o dare_v to_o make_v profession_n of_o it_o notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v be_v visible_a the_o people_n who_o be_v neighbour_n of_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v slay_v it_o shall_v hinder_v it_o from_o perish_v and_o putrefaction_n 7._o at_o the_o end_n of_o 3_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o faithful_a who_o be_v oppress_v and_o who_o profession_n shall_v have_v be_v violent_o suppress_v shall_v rise_v again_o after_o that_o shall_v ascend_v to_o heaven_n and_o shall_v be_v exalt_v 8._o at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o after_o the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o faithful_a there_o shall_v be_v a_o earth_n quake_v i._n e._n a_o great_a emotion_n and_o trouble_n in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o antichrist_n kingdom_n 9_o in_o this_o emotion_n a_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v fall_v i._n e._n a_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o it_o and_o seven_o thousand_o man_n shall_v perish_v in_o this_o earthquake_n and_o be_v bury_v under_o the_o ruin_n of_o this_o city_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v bring_v about_o with_o some_o blood_n she●_n though_o not_o considerable_a now_o when_o i_o search_v after_o the_o time_n in_o which_o this_o persecution_n must_v happen_v i_o can_v doubt_v but_o this_o be_v that_o in_o which_o we_o now_o be_v after_o this_o persecution_n shall_v be_v over_o god_n will_v begin_v to_o strike_v those_o sore_a blow_n to_o destroy_v the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n which_o must_v be_v destroy_v with_o in_o 25_o or_o 30_o year_n that_o none_o may_v wonder_v say_v he_o that_o i_o speak_v so_o positive_o about_o a_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o yet_o hide_v in_o futurity_n i_o entreat_v all_o equitable_a mind_n to_o consider_v that_o i_o have_v as_o i_o think_v with_o great_a evidence_n prove_v 1._o that_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o popedom_n must_v last_v 1260_o year_n 2._o that_o these_o 1260_o year_n begin_v about_o 450._o or_o 455._o and_o consequent_o they_o must_v end_v about_o 1710._o or_o 1715._o this_o be_v so_o we_o be_v but_o 25_o or_o 30_o year_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o popish_a kingdom_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o the_o present_a persecution_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o last_o since_o there_o be_v no_o probability_n that_o this_o present_a persecution_n be_v end_v the_o calm_a restore_v to_o the_o church_n shall_v leave_v room_n for_o another_o for_o we_o must_v allow_v the_o space_n of_o at_o least_o 20_o or_o 25_o year_n in_o which_o popery_n shall_v be_v attack_v and_o not_o be_v the_o aggressor_n and_o the_o persecutor_n and_o certain_o a_o short_a time_n can_v serve_v for_o the_o utter_a destruction_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o kingdom_n for_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v in_o a_o way_n of_o violence_n but_o in_o a_o way_n of_o persuasion_n yet_o he_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v without_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n i_o have_v say_v he_o further_o prove_v that_o the_o fall_n of_o this_o popish_a babylonian_a monarchy_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n viz._n the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n that_o the_o harvest_n be_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o last_o age_n and_o the_o vintage_n be_v the_o reformation_n that_o must_v be_v make_v in_o this_o present_a age_n etc._n etc._n he_o than_o proceed_v to_o show_v his_o apprehension_n that_o france_n must_v be_v that_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n in_o which_o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v be_v slay_v and_o lie_v as_o dead_a etc._n etc._n p._n 24●_n the_o body_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n say_v he_o shall_v lie_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o text_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o street_n in_o the_o plural_a but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o street_n in_o the_o singular_a and_o i_o can_v hinder_v myself_o from_o believe_v that_o this_o have_v a_o particular_a regard_n to_o france_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v certain_o the_o most_o eminent_a country_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o popish_a kingdom_n her_o king_n be_v call_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o church_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n i._n e._n the_o most_o popish_a according_a to_o the_o dialect_n of_o rome_n